National Development Potential
By Jane Marwood
hagnaby77@yahoo.com
Copyright 2018 by Jane Marwood, all rights reserved
*
* * * *
This work is intended for ADULTS ONLY. It may contain depictions of
sexual activity
involving minors. If you are not of a legal age in your locality to
view such material or
if such material does not appeal to you, do not read further, and do
not save this
story.
* * * * *
Richard
looked at his watch as he leaned his bike against the railings of the private
and exclusive Saville College for gifted children. Eleven minutes dead, he
thought as he fastened the security chain and hurried into the Gymnasium
corridor. He had been reducing his time day by day from his hall of residence
to the classrooms
Boys
from his class were milling around the changing room doors as the coach came
through the door from the gymnasium hall. She was grinning from ear to ear as
she addressed the class of fourteen year olds.
“Right,
listen up. Go into the changing room and get changed into your Gym shorts. One
article of clothing only... so if any one of you magnificent specimens has
accidently...” She paused and the boys had to smile as the coach looked knowingly
at Jim Murphy, who was the only boy in the class who spurned physical activity
of any kind. She continued “...or on
purpose, left his gym shorts at the halls of residence, he will present himself
in his underpants."
She
turned her head back to look at the quizzical faces.
“Today
is the college physical for boys aged fourteen, which of course means all of
you." She paused again as the groans of the boys drowned out the sound of
her voice. “Listen up, you have ten minutes only. If any of you wish to take
another shower, you have still got ten minutes.” There was a sudden rush into
the changing room as the coach blew her whistle and looked at her wristwatch.
The
coach, Grace Fanwright, was tall and athletic. Her youthful tomboy face and
straight blonde hair gave her a no-nonsense look. Her teeth were even and
white, and as she was always smiling or grinning, they dominated her face. She
was a beautiful girl, and disguised the fact with her outgoing humour and good
nature as well as baggy jogging bottoms and loose thick sport's tops.
However,
collectively, her shapely figure and long lithe legs was often the night-time
fantasy of many of the boys. She looked at them as they gathered around her.
She immediately noticed the blushing cheeks of Richard Chambers. She had no
idea why he was so shy, but she knew he had already figured that at some point
he would have to take his clothes off for the medical.
Richard
grimaced at his friend Colin Zimmerman. “No-one has said a word about the
physicals being due. I rode in at eleven minutes flat today, so I am definitely
taking a shower.”
“Me
too!” replied Colin heading for the showers.
Richard
Chambers and Colin Zimmerman had become friends when they had first entered the
college. Their love of sport and their physical stature had naturally brought
them together. Colin was already over five eight and Richard beat him by
another two inches. Richard, although he had never for a moment given his own
physique any thought at all, was an absolutely perfect physical specimen in
everyway.
He
was clean-cut, broad shouldered, with a completely flat stomach. His hips were
narrow and his legs were long and well muscled. Although he had never
considered his physique to be unusually well proportioned, his unique appearance
had not gone unnoticed amongst the all-female members of staff. Richard was
completely oblivious to any of the interest in his physique. His shyness was so
acute that he studiously avoided social interaction with any of the female
students of the college. Colin Zimmerman had already noticed Richard's blushes
when the physicals were announced, but was so used to his shyness that he
ignored it.
As
usual, Richard hung back as the boys rushed into the showers. . He always made
sure that he was alone when he showered. He also made sure that his back was
turned away from other boys when he changed for football, swimming or
athletics.
Eventually
he emerged from the changing room, last as always! He had searched his locker
and had deliberately put on the longest and baggiest gym shorts that he
possessed. Such was his rush, that his hair was still damp from the hurried
shower. Colin gave him a wink as the coach blew her whistle. Coach was popular
amongst all of the boys. She was always sarcastic and humorous but never, ever,
at the expense of a boy’s embarrassment. Coach would occasionally rib Jim
Murphy, but they each had an understanding of it's good-natured intent. Coach
knew that Murphy, for his age, was the brightest boy in college and she
appreciated that he hated any kind of physical exertion, especially at the
expense of his study time. Thus she made sure that he was always assigned to
handle the scoring sheets and the umpiring rulebook.
“Right
you wonderful specimens of manhood, listen up. Form a line at the Gym door as I
call up your names. Murphy! As you are my best and only accurate score keeper,
you take the front spot. Smith you’re next...Sproud, Simpson, Stevenson, Walters...
up you go.”
The
list continued until only Colin and Richard were left. “You two can take a seat
as you are on the 'additional' list.” Both boys looked at coach, who shrugged
and shook her head.
“Don’t
ask me why, because I don’t know why, it can't be alphabetical," she
grinned. "Take five, I am sure you will be called sooner or later.”
Richard
and Colin sat together on the benches lining the corridor walls. They tried
between them to work out what was going on as the rest of boys trooped through
the gymnasium door in single file. As the last boy went through, the coach
closed the door firmly. She shrugged and held out her palms at the quizzical
expressions of the two boys. With that gesture she proceeded down the corridor
to her office. Colin and Richard sat together, having exhausted all reasoning
of why they had not been lined up with the rest of the class. Colin even put
his ear to the door, but could hear nothing.
Had
he been able to see inside the gym, he would have been blushing just as
profusely as the young boys inside. The top quarter of the gymnasium had been
completely screened off leaving only a two-metre gap at the right-hand side. It
was with a sudden communal gasp of surprise from the young boys that Miss
Webster, the pastoral tutor, emerged from behind the screens and appraised the
boys as they stood in line near to the door in which they had entered.
The
first boy in the line, Jim Murphy had, like the other boys, blushed to a deep
shade of crimson as soon as he saw that Miss Webster was present. She paused
before beginning to walk purposefully towards the embarrassed line of boys. She
was fully aware of the effect that her appearance would have upon the young
male class. Her white shirt was tailored beautifully, almost moulded to her
slim waist, which, was tightly encircled by a wide patent belt. The entire
contingent of boys gulped in embarrassment. Their thoughts unified, as if by
telepathy. Pure humiliation! To be
standing barefoot and bare-chested in front of their pretty pastoral tutor.
She
approached the jittery row of college pupils, fully aware that her skirt was
swishing gracefully against her shapely thighs as she walked the length of the
hall. Jim Murphy managed to blush to an even deeper shade of red as she came to
a halt in front of him. Deliberately - and with a certain sadistic glee at the
boy's blushing face, she glanced down at his tighty-whitey underpants before
checking his name upon the clipboard she was carrying.
She
spoke softly as she addressed him. “O.K. Jim you’re up first, so come along
with me.” Every eye was glued to the sight of Jim Murphy standing in front of
the pretty tutor in just his underpants, his face aglow and his lips quivering
in shame. They watched in abject dismay as she led him on the long walk across
the gymnasium floor to the gap in the screens at the far end. She prompted him
through the gap to turn to his left so that he was hidden from their view. She
stepped one pace back and was again, visible to the line of boys. She addressed
them all quite sternly.
“No
talking now... and stay in the line.”
Sproud,
a normally talkative boy, watched in horror as Miss Webster disappeared behind
the screens again, but this time did not come out. My god, he thought! Miss
Webster, the prettiest teacher in the whole college. Surely she is not going to
watch the examinations! Surely there would be a screen between them? Then he
thought, despondently, she would certainly be able to hear!
Would she see him naked? He didn't know it, but
every boy in the line was having exactly the same thoughts. The boys looked
quite distressed, as they stood quaking and blushing in nervous anticipation.
They strained their ears for any clue as to the fate of their friend Jim
Murphy.
Miss
Webster had thought ahead as to where to have the waiting boys placed. She was
reasonably confident that there was a sufficient distance between the newly
screened quarters at the top of the gymnasium and the long expanse of wood
flooring to the bottom doors where the boys were standing. Hopefully, they
would not hear Murphy’s gasps of embarrassment from behind the green cotton
screens.
She
watched in amusement as the young nurse ordered the boy to stand directly in
front of her chair. "Hands upon your head please." Reluctantly she
recognized a quick thrill of excitement flow through her body as the nurse
leaned forward on her chair. No sooner had the boy obeyed the nurse's
instruction and his arms were raised, than the nurse reached forward and
swiftly pulled his underpants down to his ankles. "Come along lift your
feet so that I can take your little pants off... there, that's it! Now stand up
straight and spread your feet apart. No, no wider than that. Now let me have a good look at you!"
Jean
Webster began observing the young boy. His body was slender and slim, with skin
as smooth as any fourteen-year-old girl. His neatly featured face, although now
contorted in an expression of anguish, was quite handsome, for a moment Miss
Webster had thought that perhaps 'pretty' could have been used as a more
descriptive adjective. He was almost totally hairless, apart from a small tuft
of hair above his pale smoothly fleshed penis. His penis, in fact, was
certainly at odds with the rest of his physique. Hanging down over his plump
scrotum it looked to be about five inches long and the width certainly matched
its length in proportion. She wondered how long he would be able to stand naked
in front of the pretty young nurse before his penis reacted?
Miss
Webster was intrigued by the deft and practiced way the young nurse was
handling the boy. She watched intently as the nurse instructed him to start
running on the spot. How embarrassing, she thought! The most humiliating of
commands to be performed at any time, but whilst naked and in front of a young
and extremely pretty nurse as well as his pastoral tutor, who was merely there
to organize the boy's physicals - and that he would still have to meet on a
daily basis!
She
could not believe her own feelings of being so delighted by his blushes and
gasps as he reluctantly obeyed the command. She could tell that he was acutely
aware of his nakedness and surely that, being observed by an extremely young
nurse as well as his pastoral tutor, this was a horror that he would re-live
for a very long time!
The
boy's face expressed every nuance of his innermost feelings, unable to hide
even one jot of his shame. It must be his worst nightmare, she thought. To be so agonisingly aware of having to
perform this most embarrassing task -
and the possible consequences it may provoke! He was the brightest boy in
college, surely he must be aware that the movements had started his penis
bobbing up and down and that the constant slapping of his penis against the
tops of his thighs would, without doubt, produce stimulation beyond his
control.
"Slap,
slap, slap." He could see both the nurse and Miss Webster watching the
very object of his predicament. He was in a complete and utter cocoon of
humiliation, and yet he continued to obey the young nurse's demands without
question. "Slap, slap, slap."
Miss
Webster looked on as the nurse gave her a knowing smile. She suddenly realised
that the young boy's penis was beginning to distend as it filled with blood.
His engorging member seemed to be slapping even more violently against his
thighs. She had never ever thought in her wildest dreams that she would be
witnessing one of her pupils running on the spot -as naked as the day he was
born - while she, standing comfortably and fully clothed, was observing his
self-humiliating display.
She
watched as his penis inevitably - and to his most obvious humiliation -
extended to at least six or seven inches, and had became so stiff that it
stopped slapping against his thighs and was now merely waving in the air.
Heaven
knows, she thought! What reactions will the rest of boys have when they step
behind the screen to immediately have their shorts pulled down to their ankles
by a nurse hardly much older than they are? To top it all, they will finally be
confronted by a young and extremely pretty, Doctor Robbins performing the
dreaded hernia check!
The
nurse must only be a teenager, eighteen or nineteen at the most! I would love
to see their faces when they are presented, stark naked and reluctantly fully
erect to the young doctor.
*
It
had been an exciting prospect when Miss Webster had been asked, as the pupils’
pastoral tutor, to make the list of the fourteen-year-old remove-grade boys for
their yearly medical. She had been given the list of timings and criteria for
the examinations. Regular examinations were to be timed at five to fifteen
minutes each. The medical board also required one pupil to be more thoroughly
examined as part of a survey for the 'National Assessment of Growth' - and
lastly, if the school or college considered that there was one pupil of
superior physique, then he, or she, was required for an in depth physical
analysis to establish, what the medical form had termed as the 'National
Development Potential'. This last exam was a request rather than regulation as
only one in approximately fifty schools were able to recommend an individual
that was worthy of this description.
The
form stated that the durations of the last two examinations would be thirty
minutes to an hour for the first one, termed as the NAG; and that the second
examination, the NDP would be at least two hours - and could extend to a day or
more, especially if the boy was deemed exceptional.
Miss
Webster had had no doubts that she had a pupil that suited the description of
what the board were looking for to comply with the NAG - and had no
reservations as to whom would be suitable to take the final 'In Depth'
examination for the NDP. She had been aware of Richard Chambers’s unique
physical proportions for quite some time. She had observed him on the sport's
field and in the swimming pool. Her somewhat prurient observation of his
physique as he stood straight and focussed on the diving board, had bolstered
her interest in the young boy. She often chided herself at her wonderment as to
what the bulge in his Speedo's would manifest, were they to be removed.
She
was also intrigued, knowing his shyness with females, to see how he would react
to his examination when he became aware that the doctor was female. She
remembered the shiver of anticipation as she had looked at the signature. 'Dr.
Patricia Robbins'.
It
was two weeks after the date had been set for the examinations that she had
arrived at college an hour earlier than her usual 8am. Several bulky items of
equipment had already been delivered to gymnasium on the previous afternoon.
She
had begun to help the School Janitor to wheel the green scrub-cloth screens,
that had been part of the delivery, on to the gymnasium floor. The screens were
eight feet high and six feet wide; the stretched cloth above the castors formed
an opaque barrier. They had moved them into position as per the flooring plan
she had received from Dr. Robbins.
The
last screen and just been wheeled into place when Miss Webster turned around
from her task to observe that a particularly pretty young woman was walking
towards her, and that at her side was a young uniformed nurse, who curiously,
hardly seemed old enough to practice.
Jean
Webster had showed her surprise at the youth of the new doctor, but had had to
raise her eyebrows when the doctor, after greeting her, had not just requested
her involvement, but had assumed it. "After all" she had said,
"it is the college that is responsible for getting the boys to their
medical examination!"
"If
you will bring each boy to this part of the screen and wait with him while the
nurse has done blood pressure, respiration and heart function and body
measurements etcetera - and then you can call the next boy up as the nurse
brings the first one through the dividing screen to be examined by me."
Miss
Webster had felt a little twinge of anticipation as the doctor resumed.
"I
find that it is always more expedient to have a female tutor at these
examinations... as you know how silly and awkward boys can be when the nurse
has to strip them. I don't allow for their misguided modesty, so if you would
be so kind as to help me get through the list of boys as quickly as possible
and supply any discipline that may be necessary I would be grateful. I presume
that this school still retains the practice of spanking bare bottoms!"
The
doctor had taken a sheaf of forms out of her briefcase as the Nurse went to
examine the rest of equipment that had been delivered to Gymnasium on the
previous afternoon.
"Now
I see that you have filled in the names of boys for the National Assessment and
the NDP . Have you much knowledge of these boys... um Colin Zimmerman and
Richard Chambers?
Miss
Webster looked at the pretty young doctor and realised that she was far more
interested in the last two examinations.
"Yes
they are both athletic and tall. The first one, Colin Zimmerman is around five
feet and eight inches tall, clean cut and well built, without being a
heavyweight if you know what I mean." The pretty young doctor nodded as
Miss Webster continued. "The last boy, Richard Chambers is in my opinion
quite unique. He is very good looking facially and has a superb physique. Very
well proportioned."
She
looked slightly embarrassed as she continued, especially as she could see that
the nurse was extending the stirrups of an examination table that the janitors
had assembled and wheeled into position.
"Richard Chambers told me that he measured five feet and ten inches
in height, when I spoke to him at his monthly pastoral interview."
Miss
Webster coloured up slightly as she added. "I hope I am right in my
assessment and choice. "
The
doctor looked intrigued. "I am quite sure you are right. I am certain you
have interviewed many young boys, so it would be unusual for you not to
recognize the unique specimen when you see him!"
Jean
Webster hesitated before speaking. "There is just um... one point about
Richard. He is painfully shy. He often blushes when I talk to him about the
most mundane subjects. But when I ask him whether he has made friends with any
of the female students, or whether he has a girlfriend yet, he turns as red as
a beetroot!"
"I
wouldn't worry Miss Webster. All boys are shy and embarrassed when they are
having their physical examinations. It is just the nature of boys." Doctor
Robbins smiled reassuringly.
"Erm...
yes I know that they are, but Richard is particularly modest. I have even heard
that he won't shower until the other boys are finished, he really has a problem
with excessive modesty and shyness."
Doctor
Robbins looked thoughtfully for a moment and then spoke.
"If
he is as you say... and becomes recalcitrant during the examination. I will
have to insist that you administer a thorough bare-bottom spanking. It will
show him how important his examination is, and that we require absolute
cooperation from him. You are required to ensure that we are able to examine
every boy and, as I understand the rules, administer discipline on the school's
behalf."
Doctor
Robbins saw a flush of redness suffuse Miss Webster's cheeks. But she noted
that it was soon replaced with an expression of resolve.
"I'm
sorry. Of course I will maintain discipline. If a spanking is required for any
of the boys, you can rest assured that there will be no time wasted in getting
them back into line."
Jean
Webster experienced a tiny frisson of excitement at the thought of Richard. His
beautiful body, even perhaps laid over her knees, while she holds him firmly to
her, and administers a thorough spanking to his completely bared bottom. Oh my what a naughty, but delicious thought!
They
were interrupted by the nurse who had finished fixing the stirrups of the
examination table and had being overseeing the placement of the screens and the
two tables, which now held a collection of instruments. She smiled at Miss
Webster. "I am Nurse Joan Neville. I just need to show Doctor Robbins the
layout." The three young women stood together as Nurse Neville continued.
"I
have left a gap at the top end of the dividing screen so I can bring the next
boy through as soon as you're finished with the last one. They can go out of
the gymnasium by the far door, so none of the boys who are waiting will be able
meet someone who has already been examined."
Miss
Webster was enthralled with the nonchalance with which the nurse spoke of what
would be, in just thirty minutes time, the most embarrassing experience for a
boy of fourteen tender years. She gave her attention to the pretty young doctor
as she acknowledged Nurse Neville.
"Splendid
nurse. Now for the NDP, I want as much time as possible with him. He will have
to be shaved and cleaned inside, which, I understand, will be done in the girls
changing room. That is the exit to it, over there!"
She pointed to a door by the examination
table. "The college nurse and two of the college prefects have agreed to
prep him and then we will have him come through. He can be prepped while we are
examining," she paused and looked at her notes, "Colin
Zimmerman."
"Right
Doctor, is that alright with you Miss Webster?"
If
Miss Webster was shocked, she tried not to show it. "Yes, I will move him from the corridor and have him wait
outside the girl's changing room."
Had she heard correctly, they were going to shave Richard - and who on earth
had arranged for prefects to help in this preparation!
The
pastoral tutor could not disguise her surprise at this last piece of
information. Doctor Roberts answered Miss Webster's unasked question. "The
headmistress was keen to have two of the girls, that are going to medical
school next year, help with the boy's examination. So I suggested that they
could assist the college nurse prepare the NDP candidate for his physical exam."
Her
thoughts returned to the present, as she watched the Nurse's professional, no
nonsense, but curiously prurient approach to her examination of a young boy.
The
nurse had weighed, measured, taken blood, checked blood pressure, checked
respiration and finally given the blushing Jim Murphy a pat on his slightly
feminine bottom. Miss Webster had watched the nurse's handling of her patient.
Surely her management of the boy had not been accidental. Was she deliberately
keeping the boy erect during her examination? Never once had she missed an
opportunity to touch or arouse him. A gentle hand behind his knee as she placed
his legs further apart... the stroke of her fingers between his legs as she
placed the tape-measure to his ankle... her fingers gently brushing against his
scrotum or penis as she moved the measuring tape around his body. All seeming
so totally bereft of guile - and yet each contact had made the boy quickly draw
in his breath and gasp with humiliation and arousal.
Her
ministrations had left him with his penis fully and shamefully erect. Jean
Webster glanced at Jim Murphy's crimson face before deliberately looking down
so that his eyes guiltily followed hers towards the juncture of his thighs,
both observing his penis: one in shame... the other in delight. She thought
that there could be no greater embarrassment for a boy as she looked into his
eyes to see his anguished expression.
"Come
along Jim, let's get you in to see the doctor." Nurse Neville stroked her
hand over the cheeks of his bottom before lightly smacking it several times as
she ushered him through the dividing screen.
As
she returned, she discovered that Miss Webster had already left to fetch the
next boy.
A
blushing Peter Sproud entered the screened area and immediately blushed to a
pink hue as he suddenly saw the pretty nurse waiting for him. Jean watched as
the procedure was repeated. "Hands on your head." The gym shorts were
down around his ankles before he realised what had happened. In sheer
embarrassment, his hands dived down to his groin. It was in the same instance
that he looked towards Miss Webster, his face looking almost apoplectic as he
clasped his hands over his penis and testicles.
Miss
Webster was determined that she would not display any embarrassment in her
newfound capacity. She took hold of one of the boy's wrists and as he looked
pleadingly into her eyes, she reached around his waist and smacked his bottom
sharply. Her words were just as severe as she spoke to him. "If you
disobey again Peter, I will spank you until your bottom is bright red. Now put
your hands upon your head and stand up straight. You are acting like a silly
little boy who knows no better."
Peter
Sproud was in complete humiliation as he slowly raised his hands and placed
them upon his head. Miss Webster looked down and suddenly realised what the
fuss was about. Peter Sproud's tiny penis was fully erect and already revealing
a bead of clear viscous liquid. She dare not look at his face again for fear he
might burst into tears. It was the nurse that saved the day as she drew Peter's
attention and spoke kindly to him.
"Well
come along... a big strong boy like you will soon get through his medical. It
normally takes less than ten minutes, so lets make a good start shall we? Now
put your hands to your sides and start running on the spot as fast as you can.
Right off you go."
The
nurse watched the boy for a moment and then turned to Miss Webster. "If
you would like to pop through the screens to the other side you can watch the
doctors part of the exam procedure. She will have just finished asking the
health background questions and will be doing a visual appraisal."
Nurse
Neville gave her another knowing look as Jean Webster stepped hesitantly
forward to the dividing screen. She realised that the doctor had set up well
beyond the examination table so that her conversation with her patient did not
audibly conflict with the nurse’s necessary instructions and tests.
Doctor
Robbins was seated in front of Jim Murphy. He was standing with his legs wide
apart and his hands on his head. His face was pure crimson as he looked at her
helplessly. Miss Webster gave him a smile of sympathy before turning to the
doctor. The doctor looked up to Miss Webster and it seemed some unspoken
message was being passed between them. The half smile on the doctor's pretty
face seemed to confirm that, indeed, Miss Webster would understand the unspoken
agreement.
Jean
Webster in that moment knew that the doctor had recognised her prurient
interest in the young boys' physical examinations.
"Ah
Miss Webster I am glad you came through I am just about to start this boy's
examination. Now it might be helpful, as you are the boy's pastoral tutor, for
me to talk you through it."
She
didn't take her eyes from the boy but looked into his eyes as she addressed
him. "Do you promise to behave yourself while I examine you, young
man?"
Jim
Murphy just blushed and nodded hesitantly. "Yes... Doctor."
"Good
you may put your hands to your sides, but do not interfere with my
examination."
The
doctor gently stroked her hands down the flanks of his torso, sensing his flesh
shivering with trepidation. "I am pleased that you agree with me Jim. I am
relying on Miss Webster to apply a thorough bare-bottom spanking to any boy
that wastes my time!"
Miss
Webster could not help looking at the boy's face as he blushed so profusely
that his cheeks turned purple. Is that
the third time she has mentioned bare-bottom spankings?!!!
"As
you can see, Miss Webster, the boy has a slender and pleasing body, almost
svelte in some respects." She stroked her hands down to the flanks of his
thighs.
Miss
Webster watched the boy's reaction with delight as he visibly shivered at the
gentle touch of doctor's hands upon his body, seemingly fighting an inner
battle to keep his hands at his sides. She noted that his face was an
absolutely livid colour as she moved to stand by the side of the pretty young
doctor.
"Now
Jim..." the doctor spoke gently as she observed the boy's acute
embarrassment, "...remember a clever brain like yours." She stopped
speaking while she looked at his file. "Top of the year... still needs a
healthy body to support it."
Jim
nodded, his blushing features seemingly transfixed by the beauty of the young
doctor. His body shivered suddenly, a manifestation of his embarrassment at
being made to stand naked and erect in front of his beautiful pastoral tutor as
well as the young and assertive doctor. "Good. Right Jim, just a few
checks them we are finished."
Miss
Webster looked at the boy watching him blush as the doctor gently cupped her
hand around his scrotum. Jean noticed that the doctor used both hands although
only the left hand had a tightly fitting latex glove. She could see that boy
was breathing more heavily as the doctor nonchalantly felt the size and shape
of each testicle. "Turn your head to the left and cough for me,
please."
Miss
Webster watched as she realised that, although she had always been aware of the
ritual, she had never witnessed it. She
watched as the doctor repeated the instruction twice before she was satisfied.
Jim
was now blushing a deep red as Patricia Robbins gently took his penis in both
hands. With a familiar touch, she retracted the boy's foreskin and stretched it
back as far as it would go. Jean could see him shiver as the doctor stretched
his foreskin with one hand while she gently teased the opening of his urethra
with the other. Eventually she let his foreskin move forward again of it's own
accord. His erect penis had begun to throb with the gentle touch of the young
doctor's delicate fingers.
"As
you can see Miss Webster, young boys seem to have no control over their
emotions. If you would just go ahead and feel his testicles, you will find that
they are quite swollen." She waited while Miss Webster approached the boy.
Jean
knew that her presence alone had sent poor Jim Murphy into a hyper state of
anguish. The fact that she was now reaching forward, her hand hovering between
his legs, had caused his eyes to water. She looked into his blushing face as
she lifted her arm and gently encased his heavy scrotum into the palm of her
hand. She was aware of a shiver passing through the boy's body and a gasp of
quickly expelled breath as her hand first touched his delicate testicles.
Just
cup your fingers and lift the scrotal sac. That's the way." The doctor's
voice was so casual that Jean knew that whatever she did with the boy, it would
not surprise or concern the pretty young physician.
Jean
could not really believe that she was actually holding her students testicles
in her hand while he stood obediently and acquiescently with his legs astride.
She looked into his eyes, seeing his utter shame and humiliation. Instinctively
she squeezed his scrotum gently, feeling his penis bump against her forearm as
she leaned forward and spoke to him. Her voice was soft and gentle. "There
sweetheart, it will all be over soon."
Almost
reluctantly she let go of his testes and stood back. The doctor smiled at her
as she addressed the pretty young boy.
"Right
Jim, just one more check and we're done. Go over there and bend over the
examination table with your legs spread wide apart. I want your shoulders flat
against the surface and your head turned to the left. Off you go now."
Miss Webster watched as the boy struggled to
obey the pretty young doctor - almost stumbling towards the examination table
in trepidation at what might come next. Jean was immensely impressed with the
young doctor's seemingly nonchalant and yet ultimate authority. She watched as
the doctor moved behind him and with a little touch here and there, had him
positioned to her satisfaction. She left him while she wheeled her stool to his
left side. Miss Webster watched her lubricate two of the fingers of her gloved
left hand and was suddenly surprised as she picked up small, stainless steel,
kidney shaped dish with her un-gloved hand and handed it to her.
"Under
the penis please. I am going to examine and palpate his prostate as well as
stimulate his penis, so he will definitely be expressing quite a quantity of semen.
Sit on the stool and you will be able to observe everything. If you would make
sure that you catch it all. It is always interesting to observe the prodigious
volumes that these young boys produce. "
Without
further acknowledgement the young female doctor swiftly slipped her gloved left
hand between the cheeks of the boy's buttocks and penetrated his sphincter.
"Hoo..ooh!"
"Umph...
ooOOh." He gasped more loudly as Patricia Robbins quickly and expertly
located his prostate. She moved around to the right-hand side of the trembling
boy and reached underneath him. With her right hand, she wrapped her slender
fingers around the shaft of his penis and tightened her grip. Miss Webster
looked into the boy's brightly reddened face, which was turned towards her as
he struggled with the sensations that were being elicited from his young body.
Beneath him she could see the slender fingers of the doctor tighten around the
shaft of his penis.
Oh
Miss Webster, would you hold his testes with your other hand, a few gentle
squeezes if you would please?
Jean
had to stop herself from blushing as she reached under him and gently encased
his testicles, bringing her fingers firmly over the top of his bulging scrotum.
She thrilled as she felt his testicles pull up at the sensation of her cool
fingers enveloping him so firmly.
In
anticipation, she held the dish steady, feeling another thrill run through her
body as the young doctor seemingly ignored the boy's gasps and shivers. Her
right hand moved assertively in a series of deft strokes over the shaft and the
corona of his throbbing penis, while the slender fingertips of her left hand,
now buried deep between the cheeks of his quivering buttocks, scored firmly
over his prostate gland.
"Oh
Miss Webster would you... nice and firmly please."
Miss
Webster heard the boy grunt loudly and watched in fascination as suddenly her
dish was pounded with the first forceful eruptions of the young boy's semen.
She shivered in delight as she squeezed his captive balls in her hand. Oh My, I am holding my student's testicles
while he ejaculates. How can he bear the humiliation? What control I have over
a naked boy. He has to accept whatever I do to him. Oh my, the poor, poor boy!
Patricia
Robbins watched Miss Webster carefully. Even if the young teacher did not know
of her own prurience, Patricia could see the fascination and surprise on Miss
Webster's face as the young boy gasped and shivered with the intensity of his
immediate and reluctant ejaculation. Patricia was sure that she had been
correct about Miss Webster's interest. There was a touch of determined
dominance too, she noticed.
Doctor
Robbins was quite sure that the young tutor had never witnessed her own
particular method of checking a boy’s urological function. She decided there
and then to further explore and give every possible opportunity to expand Miss
Webster's prurient psyche. She was quite sure that she could guarantee the
pastoral tutor's complete satisfaction during the rest of the day's medical
examinations.
The
doctor milked the boy until he gasped with a surfeit of unbearable sensitivity.
She gestured to Miss Webster to squeeze more firmly as the last drops of semen
escaped from the tip of his rigid penis.
""Ooo...
ahh , oh, oh."
Miss
Webster let his testicles gently descend as she carefully took her hand from
between his legs and placed the copiously coated dish of semen on the top of
the examination couch. She watched the doctor gently withdraw her fingers from
his bottom and move away.
Rather
than hand the boy a tissue, Jean looked towards the doctor, whom immediately
recognized what Miss Webster had in mind.
Jean
spoke firmly to the naked young boy. "Stand in front of me Jim, legs
spread apart please." She looked into his guilt-ridden face as she took a
firm hold of his penis. The doctor handed her a moistened wipe and watched her
as she drew her fingers down the shaft of his penis and casually wiped the tip.
Jim
Murphy shivered as his pretty pastoral tutor wiped the sensitive tip of his
penis several times. His shame knew no bounds as she looked into his eyes. Her
voice was bright and cheerful as she chided him.
"There
we are all done! That wasn't so bad now, was it?" She took the underpants
that the doctor handed her, and looked deep into his eyes. "Now would you
like me to help you with these?"
"Oh
nooo Miss, erm, I can manage." The boy did not dare to look at her; such
was his humiliation and bewilderment.
As
the morning progressed Miss Webster learned more and more about the young nurse
and doctor. Little snippets were revealed during the odd pause in examinations.
"One thing I like," Nurse Neville had said to her in a confidential
and almost secretive fashion, "is being able to vary my procedures. I need
their heart and respiration elevated, but I like to be inventive in the way I
do it. Sometimes I make them lie on the floor and do knee to chest exercises as
fast as they can. They always get erect whenever they do that. Shall I make the
next boy do jumping jacks? The penis always slaps against the stomach and then
swings down between their legs."
She
paused and smiled mischievously. "Mind you, I only tease or embarrass them
if they are good looking!" She looked intently at Jean for a moment.
"I have to ask you this. The doctor said you were allowed to smack their
bare bottoms. If I deliberately make one of the boys appear to be a little bit
disobedient... erm, would you spank him, I mean here... in front of me? I have
never seen a boy spanked on his bare bottom... and I think I would dearly love
to."
Miss
Webster's shock became even more elevated when the doctor walked through with a
box of latex gloves.
"Oh
Miss Webster, I think you had better wear at least one of these as I would like
you assist me further with the next few boys. I think it would do wonders for
their humility to be properly penetrated by their tutor. After all you are
responsible for their personal welfare and it is obviously quite important for
you to know the state of their genital growth and of course, whether they have
properly reached puberty!"
Do I believe this? They not only
want me to spank my pupil’s bare bottoms. They want me to push my fingers right
up inside them! What was that about puberty? My God! She wants me to make them
cum!!!
*
Charlotte
Six Years Ago
Samantha
held the letter in her hand. The buff A4 envelope was addressed to her
daughter.
Charlie
Browne
The
Range
Bluff
Cove
Bridgehampton
NY
11968
Samantha
hurried through the large conservatory; her face bore a flush of excitement.
"Ah there you are Charlotte. I think your results have arrived." The
young girl looked up at her mother. Her ash blonde hair swirled around the
graceful tilt of her neck as her eyes rested upon her mother's face.
"Honestly
mother you rush around like a maid rather than a lady. Why don't you take a
seat and relax. I'm quite sure my results are not going to magically disappear
if you don't open the envelope this very moment."
Charlotte
turned her white leather swivel chair around so that she could face her mother.
Her mother, rather hurriedly, sat down upon the edge of a chesterfield and
looked into the exquisite limpid green eyes of her eleven-year-old daughter.
Charlotte
held her hand out gracefully. Her summer short-sleeved dress displaying the
perfection of her lightly tanned skin. Her face was implacable as she waited
for the envelope to be handed to. Ignoring her mother’s fidgety excitement she
took a letter opener from the drawer of her desk and opened the envelope
neatly. She skimmed the effusive words of the covering letter and merely
glanced at the pages of results. She immediately handed the paper to her mother
who grasped it eagerly. Charlotte swivelled her chair so that, once more, she
faced her desk. She picked up the journal and proceeded to continue her
reading.
Samantha
quickly read each line of the three pages of results. Every subject was marked
with an A, followed by the word 'Distinction'.
"My
god Charlotte, every one is a distinction... yes I've checked. Every single
one!"
Charlotte
smiled as she swivelled around to face her excited mother. Her voice was calm
and measured, almost sarcastic in inflection. "Yes mother, if you
remember, I read it first."
"But
you didn't go through every one... or read what the headmaster has said about
you."
"I
assure you mother, I did. Now why don't you take it with you and peruse it at
your leisure while I get some work done. Oh and please stop calling me
Charlotte. You chose that name. I was obviously not consulted, so remember I
wish to be called Charlie." She knew her mother would argue on the subject
and so she applied incentive.
"Those
results were obtained by me... Charlie Browne. Look at the name and address on
the letter. If I can persuade the headmaster to address as I wish, then I am
sure that you ought to do the same. Now leave me to work. Oh and one more thing
if you are ringing Zoe’s mother, don't boast. Just ask what Zoe got, and then
tell her that my results were similar. That's if you want to remain friends.
Got it?" She smiled at her flustered mother.
It
was some time later as they sat at the dinner table, that Charlotte steered the
conversation in the direction she required. Charlotte and her nine-year-old
brother, Peter, sat at one side of the long dining table, facing their mother.
Their mother, Samantha was immaculately dressed. Her beautiful face had the
merest touch of make-up. It was little wonder that she was one of the most
popular women in the Hamptons.
The
conversation would have amused an observer. Charlotte’s mother was effusive and
excited, whereas Charlotte was calm and measured. A role reversal that had been
in existence for quite some time. "No mother, I am not going to any of the
stuck-up Girl's Schools you have mentioned. I have made up my mind that it will
be co-educational and I have already picked one. You know I intend to do
medicine, so I am going to Savilles. They only take bright pupils. They have
the best record for sciences, and the best facilities... and I will be eligible
for a full scholarship if I want one. But I don't want one. You can well afford
to pay, and a scholarship is a burden I don't want. I know if Daddy was alive
that he would agree with me."
Samantha
smiled at her daughter. She knew full well that her daughter already had all
the brochures and application forms for Savilles and was quite happy for her to
go there. But it was fun to be seen to lose a battle. It would mean that
Charlotte might concede something in return at some point in the future.
"
Alright Charlie, if your mind is set than I would not want to make you unhappy
by sending you elsewhere."
Charlotte
smiled so sweetly that Samantha forgot for a moment what a tough opponent she
could be. Then it came... out of the blue... and out of the mouth of an
eleven-year-old girl.
"Peter
would you like me to bath you tonight. I'll let you have a really splashy time
as long as you promise not to get the floor too wet."
Samantha
looked at Charlotte quizzically. As Peter beamed at Charlotte.
"Yeah
Charlie that would be fun." Peter had no qualms about being naked in front
of Charlotte as she took him to the beach every day. If there were no people
about Peter would happily run into the water without his shorts. He loved being
with Charlotte and had been the first person to call her Charlie. He leapt from
the table. "I'm going to do my studies, so will you call me when it's bath
time?"
"Alright
Charlie Browne. What was that all about?"
"Well
mother. Now we have agreed on a co-educational school I intend to know
everything about the male anatomy. Of course I already know everything in
theory. I have read absolutely everything on anatomy, physiology and
psychology. Sexual psychology was a really hard read but I think I have really
have got a grasp of it now."
She
looked at her mother and tilted her head to one side; she smiled. It was at
these moments that Charlotte's beauty often took her mother's breath away.
"I
am just going to explore his body. I want to make sure that I know absolutely
everything. Don't look so stern Mother. I have seen how stiff his little willy
can get when you are soaping it. I am just going to explore at my own pace,
leisurely and thoroughly. Tell me, is he able to ejaculate yet. I mean does he
produce seminal fluid or is he too young?"
Samantha
smiled at her daughter. "I am not sure. I read in one of the journals,
that some boy's reach puberty earlier than others. With Peter I don't know, but
I don't think so yet." She smiled at Charlotte. "Just promise me you
will be careful, don't mess with his head. I think that is the expression you use
these days."
"Don't
worry mother I will be good. In fact mother, eventually I will be an
expert."
.
It
was just over a year later that Peter was standing upright in his bath. His
legs were spread wide and his hands were on Charlotte's shoulders. Her finger
had already penetrated his bottom and she was leisurely soaping his penis. Her
strokes were delicate and well practised.
"Oh
Charlotte I feel funny." The boy grimaced as her hands exercised further
control of his young body.
"Oh
it feels different Charlotte, something is happening."
Charlotte
smiled at him as her fingers busied themselves along the shaft of his penis and
up inside his quivering bottom.
"I
can feel it too Peter, just relax and let it happen." She looked down to
see semen ejecting from his penis. She could feel his whole body shivering and
his legs almost give way as she coaxed his penis to an expanding hardness. She
pressed hard against the prostate gland, feeling the plump gland contract, as
another jet of viscous white fluid seemed to gush from the tip of his penis.
She administered his first ejaculation beautifully. Her skill certainly belied
her tender years.
"My
beautiful Peter. Well done. Was that your very first ejaculation? You haven't
been playing with Mr. Willy while I have been away at school have you?"
"Oh
no Charlie, I only feel like this when you bathe me. Would you do it again?
Please Charlie."
"Of
course I will. But you need to wait awhile before you do it again. Doesn't it
feel sensitive?" She moved her fingers gently over the corona.
"Oooh
wait please no." He shivered in sensation as Charlotte let him go and
tenderly kissed his cheek.
"I
don't want mother to know that you are able to do that yet. But I will come to
your bedroom and do it to you when you are laid down. You will love it."
"OK
Charlie. I don't think I want Mom to know either. I would like it to be just us
having this secret."
Peter
looked shyly at Charlotte as he climbed from the bath. "Charlie... will
you still be able to put your finger in my bottom? I just feel so good that's
it's you and that you are sort of inside of me."
"Peter
there are three weeks left of my summer break. I promise you that there will
hardly be a moment that I do not have my finger up inside your little bottom.
And another thing, Peter, I am going to spank you, before I milk your
penis."
Peter
blushed. "Spank me... erm why?"
"Because
you are a bad boy, Peter. You are my little bad boy and I intend to spank your
beautiful little bottom until it is red. I want to do it so that you will
remember me when I am away. I think you even might like it. But even if you
don't, you will miss me doing it to you when you are curled up in bed and
thinking about me."
It
was early in the morning and Samantha could not stop apologising to Charlotte. "I'm
sorry, I feel I am taking advantage of you. It is just that Sadie needs a
wedding dress for her daughter and you know she won't take a step inside a
shop, unless I am by her side."
"Mother,
mother. Stop fussing. You are only going to be gone three days. I can easily
look after Peter, and Zoe is coming over to stay. So go and be a help where it
is needed. I intend to, not only be the top of the year, but so far ahead that
I will be unassailable, so puh-leeeze let me work."
Charlotte
quelled her excitement at the thought of her mother being away for three whole
days and continued her work. Her mind suddenly leaped into overdrive as she
realised that her planning could be brought forward. She made Peter's lunch and
left him to his computer as she worked on.
Zoe
arrived just after they had finished tea and both girls retired to Charlotte’s
bedroom while Peter adjourned to the TV room. It was after eight when Charlotte
called Peter to her room.
Peter
could see that she was seated on her bed as he opened the door. He was not
surprised to see Zoe lounging against the dresser as Charlotte turned towards
him.
"Come
and stand in front of me Peter, I want to have a word with you."
Peter
looked quizzical, but unperturbed as he moved to stand in front of his older
sister.
"I
have been talking to Zoe about you Peter. She is of the same opinion as me,
that you may be tempted to play with your penis while I am away at
school."
Peter
suddenly blushed furiously as he looked at his sister. His face displayed
absolute shock. Incredulous and shamed that Zoe should know about their
intimate secret. He looked at Zoe, his face blushing furiously as she caught
his eye.
"Well
Peter, let me dispel your disbelief. Zoe does know all about you. She knows
that I have made you ejaculate for the first time and she knows that I
penetrate your bottom. And what is more, she knows that you like having your
little bottom penetrated."
Peter
began to tremble, suddenly feeling very, very small and humiliated. He could
feel his eyes well up with shame as he looked at his sister. Her expression was
stern and implacable.
"As
you know Peter, girls are far more mature than boys and can handle situations
far more easily than boys. What I am going to set in place - is for your own
good. Both Zoe and I have talked at length and have decided on a course of
action that is entirely in your best interests. Zoe is my best friend in the
world and I trust her implicitly."
Charlotte
could see that although Peter was near to tears with embarrassment, he was
listening intently to her every word.
"So
Peter, let us come straight to it. I don't want to hear any complaints from
you. Please strip off all of your clothes." Peter looked absolutely
devastated and utterly demeaned. He seemed like an automaton, cocooned in
shame. He was utterly bewildered as his fingers went to his shirt buttons. He
could not help glancing at Zoe as he began to undress.
"But
Charlotte," his bottom lip quivered as he began to protest."
"Not
one word Peter, do it now."
Silence
pervaded the room while Peter began to undress. Charlotte leaned back on the
bed, resting on her hands and watching him. Her legs rubbed together, perhaps
in anticipation. The flesh was bare right up to hem of her cut-off shorts. She
risked a quick glance at Zoe as Peter was stooping to remove his shoes and
socks.
"Come
along, quickly now Peter. Shorts and underwear down now." Both girls
watched the final unveiling of his body. He shivered as he stepped out of his
shorts taking the underpants with them.
Charlotte
quickly reached forward before he could cover himself and placed her hands on
each hip.
"Hands
upon your head please, Peter."
Peter
tremulously raised his hands and placed them on his head. His face was tearful
and blushing mightily. Charlotte turned him to the side so that Zoe had a full
view of his nakedness. Even in his shame his penis was not entirely flaccid. It
hung thick and heavy for such a young boy.
"Come
and have a good look at Peter, Zoe. I want you to be able to see his little
penis and testes. Please feel them, they are usually quite full."
Peter
quaked and flushed to an even deeper hue of red as Zoe casually reached forward
and lifted his testicles, weighing them in her hand. She took her other hand to
his penis and gently squeezed the tip.
"How
often do you think I will have to milk him Charlotte? I mean if I am to stop
him wanting to play with his little willy."
Peter
could not believe what she was saying. What on earth!
"Well
we will have to work out the logistics. But certainly you will have plenty of
time after he is home from school. Your mother doesn't get home until late, so
I think the evenings will be quite easy for you. The weekends should be ideal
for a more rigorous regime of milking him consecutively. We can discuss it all
later. I think it is about time I got his little bottom thoroughly spanked and
then you can watch how I milk him."
Charlotte
turned the boy to face her and then manoeuvred him to her side. "Right
over you go Peter. I want you right over my knees so that little bottom is
raised high in the air... that's the way. Now let me just adjust your little
penis so that you are more comfortable."
Zoe
could see that his face was absolutely bright red as his head hung down and he
faced the floor. Charlotte easily slipped his penis between her bare legs,
placing her right hand gently on the cheeks of his bottom.
"Be
a good boy and take your spanking, Peter." Those were the last words she
uttered before bringing her hand down hard upon his trembling buttocks.
"Smack...
Smack... Smack"
The
spanking seemed interminable to Peter as her hand rained down upon his
buttocks. He could feel tears of shame as well as pain wet his cheeks as the
spanking continued.
"Smack
...smack... smack."
Charlotte
made sure that the inner flesh of her thighs gently stimulated his penis as she
spanked. After all he was her darling younger brother and she wanted her friend
to see him at his very best.
"There
we are Peter... that seems to have reddened your bottom nicely. Now... let's get
you milked so those little balls of yours are all nice and empty. I hope your
little penis is getting stiff. I don't want it to take too long to squirt after
I slide my finger right up into that little bottom of yours."
Both
girls saw instantly that his penis had not only erected but was throbbing up
and down as Zoe raised him to his feet.
It
was several minutes later that the girls had arranged Peter on the bed. They
had placed him in the most demeaning of positions. His thighs were spread
widely apart and his ankles were drawn up until the soles of his feet could
touch together. He tried to look away as Zoe leaned over him and cupped his
testicles in the palm of her hand. "Your penis is very stiff. Are you
looking forward to Charlotte penetrating your bottom with her finger?"
Peter
groaned with embarrassment as Charlotte reappeared with a jar of cream and some
fresh towels. "Right, relax your bottom cheeks while I pop a finger up
into you. Zoe is going to sit on the bed beside you so that she can get a good
view of what I am doing to you. R-e-l-a-x, there... that's the way." In a
fluid movement Charlotte dipped her forefinger in the jar and pressed it up
between his widely spread buttocks, pushing forward skilfully. "My that
did slide in easily. If you watch me now Zoe, see how I turn my wrist upward so
that I can curl my finger."
She
delighted in the violent shiver of his body as she continued.
"There
look how he is wriggling when I stroke against his prostate gland. There, see
now... look his penis is throbbing. He can't help it, the poor boy. Do you
know, Zoe? I think his bottom is soft enough for me to use two fingers. Can you
hold the jar out for me so I can dip two fingers?"
Charlotte
gently withdrew her digit and quickly pushed two fingers into the full jar of
lubricant. Without pausing, she placed them against his sphincter and pressed
gently but insistently. Slowly she felt them enter up into him.
"Hoo...oooh..ahh."
She
could feel his body quake. But his resistance was to no avail. Although his
sphincter contracted wildly, trying to impede her steady penetration, the
sphincter dilated with the intrusive pressure. She ignored his grunts and
groans, pushing even more firmly. At the last moment she turned her hand
upward, scoring both fingers over his prostate gland.
"Ooooh
ahhh."
"Now
don't fuss Peter, this is far better for a proper extraction of your seminal
fluids. Can you see clearly, Zoe? Look at his body shivering as I press against
his prostate. Now watch carefully."
Charlotte
let the fingers of her left hand slide delicately over the shaft of his penis.
She made several delicate and tantalising passes, listening to the moans of her
younger brother as she suddenly and firmly grasped the flesh of his foreskin.
She pulled it back until it was at full stretch and then squeezed firmly as her
hand moved upward. She speeded up her movements until suddenly his body tensed
into a frozen stricture.
His
mouth opened as the momentous ejaculation took him far beyond anything he had
ever experienced.
"OooohH...
ahhh."
He
could hardly tolerate the sensation as his sister skilfully and diligently
immersed him in the throes of pure feverish abandonment.
"There
we are sweetheart, now that seemed to take no time at all."
Peter
had had no experience to compare with this. He ejaculated forcefully and
wildly. His semen spurting from the tip of his penis with such velocity that he
almost fainted.
She
kept up the pace of her hands prodding and probing with her right hand, while
her left slid quickly up and down the shaft of his penis giving him no respite
from the exquisite agony of his torment.
"Little
boys do take on so, Zoe. It is best to ignore his moans and pleading. A
vigorous milking is what is required. So don't put up with any nonsense and make
sure he is fully drained."
Zoe
leaned over the prostrated boy her hair brushing his chest as she looked into
his eyes.
"Yes
I see what you mean Charlotte. A thorough spanking to put him in his place-and
then a firm and through milking. I assure you that there will be no concerns
about his fiddling about with his own penis. It shouldn't take long to teach
him to be obedient in that department. I presume that you are going to offer my
babysitting services so that your mother has no problems with her social
life."
Charlotte
cleaned the semen from his body. Nonchalantly she tossed the towel aside.
"Well that has made a good start to the proceedings, Peter"
Zoe
leaned over Peter again and looked into his eyes. "Now Peter we are going
to let you rest for half and hour and then I am going to give you a thorough
spanking over my knees. After I have smacked your bottom, I will give you a
nice warm bath. I am going to stand you up and make you spread your legs so
that I can penetrate you properly.
You
will promise to be good while I will stroke your penis. Make no mistake I will
do it vigorously and firmly until you ejaculate. Why don't you have a little
rest while we prepare your bath? If you are a very good boy and don't make a
fuss, I will kiss you goodnight... just like this."
Zoe
pressed her pubescent breasts to his naked torso as her mouth moved over his.
Gently she pressed her lips to his and waited for the inevitable response.
Peter seemed to sigh as she thrust her tongue into his mouth penetrating him deeply
and lovingly. Her hand slid down to his penis and she squeezed the captive
flesh feeling him shiver beneath her lips.
*
Present Day
Charlotte
Browne, now seventeen years old and already elected head prefect, walked
leisurely and demurely along the corridors of Saville College. Her thoughts and
hopes kept her company. She held the clipboard against her breasts as if to
accent her modest nature. Well it seems that my hard work and finagling over
the last two weeks has finally born fruit. To what extent Judith and I will be
able to participate is yet to be seen.
Judith
Nixon had become Charlotte's best friend. She was surprisingly similar to her
friend from home and had immediately taken to each other. Charlotte and Judith
had become firm confidantes while she was away from home and from Zoe. They
were the most beautiful girls in the school and both were extremely bright,
confident and assertive. It was surprising how similar they were by nature.
Although, Judith had dark hair and wore glasses, giving her a beauty a studious
persona, both of the girls seemed utterly at ease with themselves and each
other. Their interests and predilections were entirely 'simpatico' and their
interest in having their way with one particular boy had become their goal for
the past year or more.
Her
thoughts continued as she walked. I know the nurse was quite impressed with us
when we helped with the junior girls.
The
only other clue to the School nurse's nature was that when she had offered to
walk over the gymnasium to fetch the boy, the nurse had seemed relieved that it
was not her who would have to do it. She had nodded at Charlotte in gratitude.
What
else is there? Something somewhere. Got it! She doesn't like paperwork.
Understandably she thought wickedly, her handwriting is atrocious and slow. Got
it! I bet she can't spell!!!
Charlotte
had an excellent sense of intuition. She had sensed that the nurse perhaps felt
a little intimidated by all of the very bright students at the school. For
someone of average intelligence it must be rather off-putting sometimes to
realise that perhaps a ten or eleven-year-old boy or girl was already brighter
and better educated than a twenty-five year old nurse. Of course the nurse
would not have had trouble handling the boys and girls. She was a very
good-looking young woman and her aura of care and concern for her young
patients made her an excellent nurse. Everyone has some kind of Achilles
heel... let's hope that I am right about hers.
Charlotte
walked out into the sunshine and headed along the path to the sports facility.
As she walked she became more convinced that she was right. What if that is it.
What if she CAN'T SPELL!
Charlotte
neared the entrance of the main sports building. She could see that two boys
were seated on the benches in the lobby of the gymnasium. Her heart quickened
as she saw that they were only attired in their gym shorts.
Charlotte
didn't speak, but marched quickly forward to stand in front of them. She saw
them both blush in embarrassment and confusion as she looked down at them.
Prefects at The Saville Academy for Gifted Children, had almost unlimited
ultimate authority over other students. They were well chosen and well vetted,
but once elected, their authority was absolute. It was based upon the English
Public School system and worked very well. The anomaly that made the academy
somewhat different to the English system was, that only girls could be elected
to prefecture.
Charlotte
took her time as she examined the semi-naked boys seated in front of her.
She
knew that their bared chests and legs would accent their vulnerability. She
deliberately and overtly looked over their bared flesh before addressing them.
"What are your names?" Her first words seemed to cause them much
embarrassment, as she continued to look them over. Of course she knew exactly
who they were. Richard Chambers had caught the eye of everyone, well every
girl, even though he was only 14 years old. She noted the smooth skin of his
swimmer's body.
Yes! He is absolutely perfect in
every detail. Even with that huge pair of shorts covering most of him from
naval to knee.
Colin
spoke first. "Ah... Colin Zimmerman, Miss."
Charlotte
looked down as if to see that his name matched her paperwork. She hesitated
awhile and then looked at Richard. "And you boy... who are you?" She
delighted as he blushed immediately to a fetching shade of red.
"Oh...
ah... Miss. My name is Richard... ah Chambers, Miss."
Suddenly
Charlotte had an inspiration. "Stay where you are boys, I will be back in
a few moments." She walked past them and promptly opened the gymnasium
door and stepped through, closing it immediately behind her. There was one boy
standing waiting inside. His face blushed as soon as he saw her. She ignored
him and walked towards the screens at the far end of the hall. She had a brief
moment's hesitation before she boldly walked behind the screens.
The
sight that greeted her was a delight. A naked young boy was performing jumping
jacks. His turgid penis was slapping
rapidly; alternately swinging wildly against his legs and his tummy. She was
surprised as she saw Miss Webster's presence. The Pastoral Tutor was standing
to his rear. Suddenly, without warning, Charlotte saw her slap his bared bottom
several times.
"Come
along boy, we will be here all day if you don't pick up your pace." The
nurse was looking amused as she turned to Charlotte. Charlotte spoke quickly
before the nurse had time to question her presence at the boy's examination.
"Oh
nurse we are ready to prepare the NDP candidate... ah Richard Chambers. Colin
Zimmerman the... ah," again, Charlotte looked down at the forms on the
clipboard, "NAG candidate is waiting outside of the main door. Shall I
send him inside so that you are not kept waiting, I see you only have one boy
left to do."
The
nurse's attention was diverted towards the young boy who was suddenly crouching
forward, holding his hands tightly over his penis and testicles, and blushing
profusely at the sudden sight of Charlotte.
Miss
Webster looked towards Charlotte and the nurse. "I'm sorry to interrupt,
but I'm afraid I have discipline problem." She pulled a chair towards her
and sat down, at the same time taking a firm grip of the young boy. It seemed
like only seconds before he was face down across her knees. Charlotte had the
feeling that Miss Webster had intended her to leave. However as she did not
speak, Charlotte stood next to the nurse and waited.
"Smack...
smack... smack..." the slaps came thick and furious and his bottom soon
became as red as his face. Charlotte glanced towards the nurse and noted her
avid interest in the spanking of the young boy. She whispered to her. "I'm
Charlotte by the way."
"Smack... smack... smack... smack..." It seemed to
be several minutes before the boy was allowed to raise himself from Miss
Webster's knees. She looked sternly at him making sure that she had his full
attention. "Now continue, unless you would like some more of the
same."
Charlotte
felt a thrill as she looked at the face of the young boy. She could see that he
was totally humiliated. There were tears in his eyes as he glanced anxiously at
her. It seemed as if he was telling her that she should not be witnessing his
shameful punishment, or the reluctant bouncing display of his naked body.
The
nurse spoke nonchalantly to Charlotte as they both watched the young boy. He
was now performing far quicker jumping jacks and was visibly embarrassed beyond
belief. His penis had become more fully engorged as it slapped rapidly against
his legs and torso.
"Yes
you can send him through. Was there something else you wanted to ask?"
"Well
I was wondering whether you wanted any notes taken during the
examinations?"
The
nurse looked at Charlotte thoughtfully and suddenly smiled. "Well the NAG
exam is just ticking boxes and you will be busy during that one anyway. However
the NDP is a nightmare of description."
Charlotte
was about to reply when Miss Webster interjected, ignoring the furiously
blushing young boy.
"Well
thank you, Charlotte. That is such a kind offer. I know that you know most of
the terminology, and I don't want to have to write it out again, which I know I
would normally have to do." She smiled at Nurse Neville. "Our nurse
is very good, but her literary skills are really quite pitiful. Give her the
forms nurse... and Charlotte can see what is required before she brings the boy
in."
Nurse
Neville reached behind her to the pile of forms on her desk. She spoke brightly
to Charlotte, but surreptitiously gave her a knowing look. My god, thought
Charlotte, I've been found-out. What's the expression? Well and truly
'rumbled'.
"Here
you are Charlotte. There are about six pages so you will be busy. The doctor
normally dictates during the different stages of the exam. You will have plenty
of time to write as she is always a stickler for having concise
descriptions."
Charlotte
smiled. "Don't worry, it's my forte to be precise, I am always accurate
with my notes. I find that it saves me a lot of time when I am doing my own
homework after lectures."
"Well
you will have to sit close to the doctor while she is doing her examination. I
would not want you to miss anything,"
Nurse
Joan Neville turned her head and smirked quickly at Charlotte, before turning
back and gesturing for the boy to halt. She knew Charlotte would be watching
her as she spoke firmly to the young boy.
"Now
young man, what may I ask is the meaning of this?" She immediately moved
forward and tapped her fingers against the exposed glans of his now fully erect
penis.
Charlotte
would have loved to have stayed but she knew that she had things to do. Perhaps
it would look better to Miss Webster that her interest was entirely altruistic.
The
nurse suddenly took a firm hold of the blushing boy's penis. Without letting
go, she turned to Charlotte. "I am Joan, by the way." Charlotte could
hardly stop herself from giggling as the nurse held the boy's rigid penis and
spoke once more.
"Thank you for offering to do the
paperwork. It will be a far more thorough exam than this one." Charlotte
thrilled with anticipation as she tucked the sheaf of forms into her clipboard
and walked through the opening and back towards the entrance of the gymnasium,
her heels audibly punctuating her progress.
She
stopped at the far end of the hall to stand in front of the waiting boy. She
spoke gently to him as he stood apprehensively waiting for his examination.
"I hope you are going to be a good little boy while you are behind the
screens. Otherwise I fear you may be in for a bare-bottom spanking." She
walked on leaving the boy alone with his cheeks blushing a bright red. What a
wicked girl I am, she thought with glee.
She
walked back though the double doors and, once again stood in front of the two
seated boys. "Zimmerman, you may go through now and wait just inside the
doors. It should not be long before you are examined."
She
waited as Colin got up and opened one of the double doors and walked inside.
God help him, she thought.
She
looked down at Richard, feeling thoroughly emboldened by her experiences behind
the screens . "You boy, please come with me."
Charlotte
did not wait for his reply before she turned away from him. She had just had a
fleeting glimpse of his face as it turned to a furious flush of redness.
Oh
so like Peter she thought. Oh I do so hope I get my hands on him. He is
absolutely delicious. Mind you my chances have already improved dramatically. I
wonder whether Richard will be made to do the jumping jacks while he is naked?
She
turned to Richard, eyeing his bared chest as he walked sheepishly behind her.
"Come along boy, walk by my side where I can keep my eye on you." She
watched his face crumple in embarrassment. What an absolutely thrilling sight.
God he is going to die of shame when we get our hands on him.
Thrilled
by the close presence of the near naked boy, Charlotte became bolder. She
placed her hand on his bared shoulder. She could feel him flinch as she stroked
her hand down his back as they walked. In a moment of inspiration, she stopped
the boy. She had noted that there was a cool gentle breeze as they trod the
outside path, which took them through the cloisters.
She
placed the palm of her hand over his chest feeling his nipple. "Well boy,
I thought that that only happened to girls." She noted that the boy
immediately looked down to the ground and his face, once more, flushed to a
deep shade of red. She let her fingers toy with the erected flesh for a moment
longer before she moved on. Charlotte became even more brazen and lowered her
hand to his bottom. With a quick smack of his buttocks, she admonished him.
"Come along boy, keep up."
The
shiver of embarrassment that ran through his body rewarded her more than she
could have hoped for. She slid her hand up to his bare torso and kept it there,
loosely around his waist as they walked into the main school building. His bare
feet slapped against the tiled floor as she led him triumphantly to his
humiliating fate.
*
The
girls changing room had been chosen for the NDP preparation because of its
wet-room floor. There were raised areas of flooring consisting of wooden slats
on which the girls would stand to change. The area beyond that was a complete
wet facility where shower heads as well as flexible, hand-held water jets were
set into the wall. Beyond the showers, raised a few inches above the wet area,
were toilet cubicles and rows of lockers.
The
Nurse's examination table had been wheeled into the room as well as her desk,
which held on its surface all matter of paraphernalia that would be needed. A
tall stand had been set up with an enema bag hanging from its chromium-plated
hook. The girls' changing room had become a complete and efficient set-up for
the boy's preliminary preparation.
Nurse
Angela Summers had checked everything twice before she turned to Judith Nixon.
"Well Judith, thank you for all your help. And Charlotte's too. I was
rather hoping I wouldn't have to handle him on my own. He is bound to be
totally embarrassed by the procedure... well, who wouldn't be. One has to
admit, it is embarrassing isn't it. I mean having to have your pubis shaved by
the opposite sex. Even if you are only a young boy."
Judith
smiled to herself. Both she and Charlotte knew that it would be as embarrassing
for him as they could possible make it. The boy was quite beautiful and she was
sure that she and Charlotte were the envy of the girls at the school. However
Charlotte's planning and manipulative skills had outclassed even the cleverest
of the other prefects. Although Judith, in fact knew, that all of them would
have gladly taken their place, had they been given the opportunity.
Charlotte
entered the room, immediately smiling at Judith and Nurse Summers. She held the
clipboard to her as she spoke. "I have had Richard Chambers sit outside
while I made sure that you are prepared. The Nurse who is doing the boys'
examinations has given me all the paperwork. I am afraid there seems to be an
awful lot of it."
Angela
Summers suddenly looked worried. "How much is there?" Charlotte
thrilled instantly. "Well, all in all, about nine pages of description...
and then some mandatory forms." She forgave herself the small
exaggeration.
"Angela
spoke softly, her voice sounding a little nervous." Am I obliged to fill
them in.? Ah, it seems an awful lot of writing."
Charlotte
immediately knew that she had been correct in her guesses about Nurse Angela
Summers's particular Achilles heel. "Well if you are going to be busy
helping the doctor, I could take the dictation. I am excellent at taking notes.
I mean that is if we are allowed into the examination."
Angela
Summers beamed so brightly at Charlotte that she had to smile at her. "Oh
would you Charlotte. I have to make a confession; I have a problem with reading
and writing. I was told that it doesn't mean I am less intelligent, but I have
a condition. It is called Dyslexia. They told me when I was quite young."
She giggled. "It was quite funny really, because, I couldn't spell
it." She grinned again as she looked at both girls. "Fancy having a
word like Dyslexia or Dyslexic to describe someone that can't read very
well." All the girls laughed at the obvious incongruousness of the word.
Charlotte
was absolutely thrilled. Held in her clipboard was her first class, VIP, Bona
Fide, Platinum Card, absolutely scrumptious meal ticket to observe a beautiful
naked boy being examined in such a fashion that he would probably expire from
embarrassment and humiliation. What a thrill they were going to have. Viva
Dyslexia!
Charlotte
had immediately warmed to the pretty nurse, especially after she had seemed so
casual about the girls going into the examination with her. And that she had
been so honest about her impediment. She looked toward the young nurse and
smiled warmly.
"I
know of famous writers and columnists that are dyslexic. It must be awful when
words look so jumbled up. Don't worry; in spite of it, you are obviously a very
competent nurse. I assure you that there will be no complaints from the doctor
or the authorities on the quality of my, stroke, your notes. So are we going to
get started?"
Both
Charlotte and Judith knew that their best chance of handling the boy would be
in the next thirty minutes or so.
The
nurse seemed quite happy to accept the girls poorly-concealed prurience. In
fact with the pressure now off from taking notes, she thought that she would
afford them every opportunity to pursue their natural proclivities. She spoke
quite nonchalantly. "If you are both ready, I will fetch the boy through,
we really ought to get started!" This time there was no mistaking the
young nurse's knowing look.
Richard
was blushing in stops and starts as he sat, shivering in shame on the one tiny
chair that had been placed outside the girls' changing room. He could not help
his mind replaying each embarrassing moment. Every incident brought a fresh
blush to his face.
From
the moment he had looked up to Charlotte Browne, it had been one humiliation
after another. It was the first time that he had even seen her in close
proximity. Of course her beauty was legendary amongst the boys. But
seventeen-year-old prefects did not deign to talk to lowly fourteen-year-old
boys... unless of course they were in trouble.
Already
embarrassed at being dressed in only a pair of shorts, Richard had hoped not to
see anyone. And suddenly there she was in front of him. My god, she had looked
him up and down. Then, horror upon horror, she had put her hand on his bare
back... and then she had slipped her hand down and smacked his bottom! Soon,
had come the most embarrassing moment of all. She had stopped and placed her
hand on his nipple and rubbed it... and then she had compared him to a girl!!!!
He
sat on the small wooden chair absolutely bewildered as to why he was there and
why the school's most beautiful prefect, Charlotte Browne, had brought him to
the girls' changing room. He almost jumped out of his skin as the School nurse
opened the door behind him and spoke. "Richard Chambers, please stand up
and come with me."
As
he stood, she took hold of his bare arm and ushered him into the room. He
quaked as he saw both Judith Nixon and Charlotte Browne standing behind the
clinical examination table. The girls had both removed their school blazers and
were now dressed in crisp white blouses, neat school ties, and navy skirts. To
his horror he noticed that they were also wearing clear plastic aprons... and worse,
that their hands were covered in latex gloves. Such was the girls' overwhelming
beauty, that he had failed to notice the stirrups, gleaming brightly and ready
and waiting for him, already set high and wide.
Richard
could feel his cheeks burning with shame as the nurse spoke to the two
prefects, nonchalantly turning the boy towards them as she did so. "Please
remove his shorts, will you Miss Browne and Miss Nixon."
She
completely ignored the boy as she smiled at the girls. "Then if you would,
I would like you to arrange him upon the table... on his back please with his
bottom as close to the edge as you can manage and his calves in the stirrups.
It is best to start with him just sitting on the end of the bed."
The
nurse moved around the bed and towards the IV stand, leaving Richard to face
the girls.
It
was Judith that addressed him first. "Are you all right Richard, your face
is very red." Richard looked at her, his mouth opened wide. But he could
not for the life of him, utter one word; such was his total and absolute shock.
Nurse
Summers looked at him as she was inserting the tubing to a large plastic bag
hanging from the stand.
"Answer
your Prefect, Richard! The headmistress has given Miss Browne and Miss Nixon
full permission to spank your bare bottom most thoroughly, should you be so
foolish as to disobey the instructions you are given. Now answer Miss Nixon
when she asks you a question."
Richard
stood open-mouthed his chest was heaving as if he were having a panic attack.
Charlotte on the other hand was thrilled with the events as they were turning
out. Had the headmistress really given her permission, or was the nurse's
understanding of her predilections slightly more perceptive and intuitive than
Charlotte had thought? She decided on the latter and looked inquiringly at
Angela. The young school nurse smirked and then turned her back as she attached
the tubing firmly to the bag.
Charlotte
knew that the boy was almost stupefied with embarrassment. She took one pace
forward, and without a moments' hesitation, took his wrists and raised his
arms. "Hands upon your head Richard, quickly now. The doctor is waiting
for you." She did not dare mention the word 'spanking' again, for fear the
boy might faint there and then."
Richard
while utterly embarrassed would never have dreamed of being disobedient. He had
never, ever, usurped or defied authority. With the physical urging from
Charlotte, he placed his hands upon his head. He could hardly see through the
tears of shame that blurred his vision.
Charlotte
magnanimously gestured to Judith to remove his shorts. Judith knew her friend
well. It would be like eating all the birthday cake at one's own party, for her
to intercede in what must be Charlotte’s ultimate prize.
Judith
instead, spoke gently to the young boy. "Now Richard, please be a good boy
while Miss Browne get's you undressed ready for the doctor. You will promise to
stand up straight and behave, won't you Richard? I suppose it must be a bit
embarrassing for a fourteen-year-old boy to have his shorts taken down by a
pretty girl. Never mind, it must be done. I don't want to see your bare bottom
over Miss Browne's knees while she has to spank you. Promise me you will be
good. Will you Richard, promise me?"
Judith's
little speech had done wonders for the situation. Charlotte could not believe
how well her friend must have known how she felt. She wasted no more time. She
knelt in front of the terrified boy and placed her cool, delicate hands upon
his waist.
She
thought back to her brother Peter, being made to reluctantly strip off his
clothes in front of the pretty eleven-year-old, Zoe. Well her anatomical and
psychological studies of Peter should stand her in good stead. Her friend Zoe,
in her absence, was still milking and spanking him several times a day, even
though he was almost sixteen.
She
waited, savouring the moment. She could not help, wickedly, making sure that
his eyes were locked upon hers as she whispered softly to him. "Good boy
Richard, now we all know what little boys have hidden under their shorts, so
please don't be embarrassed. I promise we will be as gentle as we can with you.
Don't fret little one."
Charlotte
knew that her words, as had Judith's, would comfort him and belittle him at the
same time. With a pure unadulterated thrill piercing her body. She increased
the pressure on her fingers and slipped them into the waistband of his
voluminous shorts. She saw him raise his head to look upward.
As if, even for a moment, she would
let him avoid one jot of his impending
ignominy!
She
could feel his trepidation as her hands slid down his body. Inch by inch she
revealed her prize, savouring every morsel of his shame and his flesh. Each
sensation increased her excitement. The stretching of the material at the first
beautiful curve of his bottom. The shiver of his trembling body being
exquisitely transmitted through her fingers as she eased them over his fine
pubic hair.
The wickedness of her deliberations at the
first touch of the waistband against the shaft of his penis. The shivers and
his blushing cheeks as she looked at him. The feel of his flesh, so pure and
unadulterated against time or physical sensation. Her hands, smoothing overtly
over his smooth, timid flesh. She: predatory and dominant, savouring every
nuance of his trembling humiliation. Her appreciation of his body growing,
while the inexorable progress and revelation of his shame grew with it.
The
inner elastic of his waistband now tugged at the turgid swelling of his penis,
slowly and deliciously revealing an intimate glimpse of her quarry. The
inevitable progress of his shorts continued ever downward.
Charlotte
began to get a perfect view of her prize. His penis was thick, and as she had
always known from her surreptitious views of him, most generous to his stature.
She bared his genitals fully, suddenly bringing the waistband of his shorts
down to mid thigh. She heard the exquisite and explosive gasp of his indrawn
breath as he was fully and shamefully bared!
She
could feel his tremor of utter humiliation. She knew, without doubt, that it
was his first ever experience of being overtly and thoroughly uncovered. She
had given him not one single place to hide. He was being forced to endure the
sickening and reluctant manifestation of his nakedness. The epitome of a young
boy's withering shaming by a beautiful and ultimately authoritative young girl.
Richard
could not believe that this was actually a reality. Even in his humility, such
was his guilt, that he had to look down. His eyes were unable to avoid hers.
She looked into his eyes; holding his gaze hypnotically. Her expression
belittling him, almost scornful of his ultimate humiliating defeat and extreme
exposure. He seemed to be able to feel every millimetre of his bared flesh. He
looked down at his penis and testicles, excruciatingly aware that she was also
examining the very same objects. He could even feel her every breath playing
upon his most private parts! Charlotte, relishing his utter vulnerability,
wrenched the shorts to his feet.
"Well
Richard come along now lift you feet. I can't deal with you while you have
these stupid baggy shorts around your ankles."
Charlotte
knew that her mental image of his body was entirely accurate. His genitals
were, without any doubt in her mind, absolutely perfect. His testicles were
tight and full within the pale scrotal sac. The flesh of his penis was also
pale and quite exquisite; plump, soft and beautifully formed.
She saw that he was circumcised and yet the
foreskin just covered his corona. His body, she had always known, was perfect.
Now as she examined him carefully, she could see that his penis and testicles
were equally pristine and perfect in every way. She could not wait for him to
erect. Not that she was not confident of the size of growth he would soon display,
but rather to see the utter embarrassment on his face while she examined him.
Richard
was in turmoil. It was impossible... and yet it had happened. The most
beautiful girl in the whole school had stripped him until he was as naked as
the day he was born. How could it happen! His nakedness utterly devastated his
shy nature. Even more alarming to him was the first stab of the cruel betrayal
of his most secret and personal feelings.
He
felt her breath even closer against his genitals. He could not comprehend that
his exposure would manifest itself in the immediate unprovoked stimulus of his
inner sexual feelings. He felt it, the first definite and undeniable stab of
arousal. Oh please no! Please no! Yet to his horror, it was happening. Oh no
please no. He could not believe it. He looked down, unable to avoid her eyes as
his penis throbbed once between his legs. One overt and singular pulse that he
knew had betrayed him. Please, he must not become aroused! He had to know...
had she noticed? He dared to look at her. He quaked in despair, seeing her
beautiful face with a subtle but intrusively knowing look as she realised what
was about to happen to him.
It
was with absolute shame that he lifted his feet, feeling her hands take the
garment and dispose of it on the bench that stood alongside them.
Seemingly
innocently, she stroked his thigh as she stood and looked at him. "Come
along boy, sit on the examination couch and let me get you positioned so that
you are laid on your back with your legs high and wide. It is important that
the nurse can feel between the cheeks of your bottom." Richard blushed
mightily, as any young boy would, with the pronouncement of the nature of her
intended humiliations upon him.
Judith
moved forward, feeling pleased with her decision to let Charlotte strip the
boy. She felt ultimately justified as she deliciously slapped his firm bottom
and moved his young body, to bring his buttocks in line with the end of the
couch.
"Come
along there, hop up and lay back. Don't worry about your legs, we will attend
to them." Judith's voice was firm as she saw him hesitantly lever himself
up to a sitting position.
Can a naked young boy really blush
so furiously?
Together
the girls manoeuvred him until he was laid back and blushing uncontrollably. To
his utter shame, both girls lifted his legs and simultaneously placed his
calves into the stirrups. The loops of the stirrups were deep and offered no
chance of escape. As both girls stood back from him, he could see their
attention drawn to his penis, which, to his abject horror and shame, had become
full and turgid. Laying overtly and indecently on his pubis as if it was a
plump sausage on a butcher's slab! His shiver of utter shame and embarrassment
knew no bounds!!
As
Judith looked at the boy, her heart suddenly palpitated inside her ribcage.
Charlotte had been right! The boy was absolute and ultimately perfect. What
intrigued her more was that his embarrassment excited her so much that she felt
a sudden stab of guilt!
My God. His humility and shame had
utterly intrigued her. His reluctance made her heart leap. Here was a boy that
was shamed to the core at being exposed. And she loved it! No longer would she
care for the football jocks that deliberately showed their muscles and bodies
with bravado and pride. What she craved for had just become clear. A perfect
specimen, who was rendered shamed and thoroughly servile by his enforced
nakedness and was entirely and officially under her ultimate authority!
The
boy was spared no humiliation as the nurse spoke crisply. "Oh... Miss
Nixon and Miss Browne, I see that you have him positioned correctly. Just make sure his arms are stretched out
above his head. I have the enema nozzle prepared and so, if you would like to
lubricate him with the cream from the blue jar, I would be grateful. Please use
your fingers and penetrate the sphincter until it dilates. Then if you would
push up into his bottom as far as you are able.
You will find that you will need a lot of
lubricant, as the sphincter muscle will strip you of much of it. So I suggest
that you both do it in turns. One of you please hold his genitalia up from his
body and the other one of you, penetrate his bottom. Is that alright? You both
have your gloves on, I see."
Richard
quaked at every word the nurse uttered. No, no... surely no!
Charlotte
saw the nurse beckon her. She was out of sight of the young boy as she leaned
forward towards the nurse. Angela placed her lips next to Charlotte's ear and
whispered softly. "He must not be allowed... or made to ejaculate under
any circumstances. Clear?" Charlotte nodded sagely in the affirmative.
She smiled at Angela, who gave her a smirk
before mouthing one singular word. "Enjoy."
Richard
was under a cloud of shame. He had not realised how vulnerable he could feel,
until suddenly the two stunningly beautiful prefects had stretched his legs
wide. Both of them seemingly quite unperturbed by his embarrassing and shameful
predicament.
He
could not help looking at them in an absolute torment of vulnerability as they
nonchalantly moved to the desk. It was Miss Nixon who seemed to be coating her
fingers as Miss Browne moved to look down upon his prostrated form. He could
feel his heart beating. Was she really going to hold his testicles while Miss
Nixon put her fingers up into his bottom, please no! They were not nurses... or
doctors yet. How could the school nurse allow them to subjugate him to such an
indignity?
As
if hearing his thoughts, the nurse spoke directly to Richard. "I want you
to co-operate and relax your bottom while your Prefects, Miss Browne and Miss
Nixon are penetrating you. You are a very lucky boy to have such responsible
girls caring for your welfare. Remember Richard that I shall instruct them to
spank you if I see any recalcitrance on your part. Do you understand me? Answer
me boy!"
Richard
realised that the nurse was waiting for a reply. He managed to look up at her
through his haze of watery eyes and utter degradation. "Er... yes miss...
I mean nurse. I will ah... do as you say."
Nurse
Angela Summers looked into the boys face as she spoke to him.
"When
I say relax, I want you to make your bottom available to the intrusion. As soon
as you get the hang of it, you will find that you are able to accommodate a
full penetration with ease. Fingers are a lot more pliable than an enema
nozzle, so it will pay you to allow full access to your bottom. The lubrication
will allow the nozzle to slide in a lot more easily. Do you understand
me?" She moved her hand into his view and showed him the long, fat and
shining metal nozzle, which was attached to the fully-filled enema bag. The boy
almost gasped out loud as he saw the huge appliance.
"Do
you see? It is in your interests to allow Miss Nixon and Miss Browne to
penetrate and lubricate you as deeply as they are able. The deeper the better
is my motto!"
Richard,
the shy innocent boy of an hour ago. Now laid naked with his legs spread high
and wide, his most private and intimate parts, his penis and testicles, were
displayed openly. The absolute shame. The two prettiest girls in the whole
school were about to penetrate his bottom and lift and hold his penis and
testicles as rudely as they pleased.
The
nurse watched as Judith moved in-between his widely spread thighs. Charlotte with a nonchalance that belied her
prurient interest, moved to his side. Casually she reached for the juncture of
his legs. "Right Richard, relax your bottom. I am going to hold your penis
and testicles quite firmly, so no fussing now, Do you hear me?"
Richard
muttered but could hardly speak as Charlotte, to her absolute delight lifted
his swollen testes into the palm of her left hand. With her right hand, instead
of just taking hold of his penis, she grasped the shaft and swiftly pulled the
foreskin back until it was stretched tightly against his pubis. She hardly had
to wait a moment before she felt the flesh throb violently beneath her delicate
fingers. She squeezed and began to move the foreskin up over the corona. Her
breath teased the hair of his pubis as she leaned forward, diligently moving
his foreskin up and down until he was as rigid as a telegraph pole. She
squeezed his testicles, delighting in the feel of such plump balls. What an epiphany! What a triumph!
"Oh
dear nurse, look at this. He has developed an erection. What on earth must he
be thinking about to display himself so blatantly? Surely he ought to be
punished for such an overt and boastful sexual display."
The
nurse looked at the boy seeing his heaving chest and his absolute dilemma of
emotion. She gave both Charlotte and Judith a look of mock and mischievous
admonishment.
"Perhaps
Miss Nixon, he will not have quite so much bravado when you penetrate his
bottom."
Judith
stepped forward, her plastic apron pressed against the boy's widely spread
thighs; she looked at him and spoke his name to get his full attention.
"Richard." Her lubricated hand suddenly pressed against the crevice
of his bared buttocks. Her fingers wriggled against the very core of his
bottom. Her voice was calm as she sensed the boy's sudden alarm.
"Take
a deep breath please, Richard." Judith left him no time to comply as she
pressed her forefinger firmly against the tightly constricted sphincter of the
trembling young boy. Instinctively, she did not push further, but left the
pressure upon the tight ring of muscle. Charlotte was watching avidly as she
squeezed the boy's testicles quite firmly. He gasped in response and Charlotte
saw with delight, that his involuntary reaction had forced his sphincter to
relax and Judith's finger to slide up swiftly into his bottom.
She
smiled in delight, knowing that it was she, that had prompted the boy's
reaction by her intuitive squeeze of his testicles. Deliciously collapsing the
boy's resistance to the pressure of Judith's finger.
Judith
spoke gently to him. "Good boy, just try and be brave while my fingers
slide up inside you."
Richard
blushed as he looked into the beautiful and studious face of Miss Nixon. The
feeling inside of him felt so intrusive, so intimate, and so shaming, that he
could hardly believe that it wasn't a terrible dream. He shivered, as suddenly
he was confronted by an exquisite feeling of pressure from deep inside of his
bottom. He felt his penis throb shamefully in response - and at the same time
his body suddenly quake as Miss Browne pinched the tip of his penis and
squeezed his testes firmly.
Judith
felt a thrill run through her body. She contained her feelings well as she
spoke to the boy. "Just relax, I intend to lubricate you thoroughly so
that Miss Browne can come and stretch you even more widely. We must make
absolutely sure that your little bottom is ready and pliant for the
nozzle."
Judith
could not believe her audacity, deliberately teasing the boy's delicate
feelings, entirely for her own delicious sexual predilections. Well, she
thought, I bet you remember this day for the rest of your life. And if I know
Charlotte, we are going to make doubly sure that you do!!!
Part Two
Colin
Zimmerman stood alone in the gymnasium. He had seen no one for the last fifteen
minutes since Miss Browne had instructed him to enter the gymnasium. Several
times during his wait, he had heard jumbled sounds emanating from behind the
screens at the far end of the hall; but other than that he had heard or seen no
one.
Suddenly
his attention was drawn to movement at one side of the screen. Oh no, it can't
be! He watched in horror as Miss Webster, his Pastoral Tutor, appeared. What on earth is Miss Webster doing here?
The beautiful Miss Webster whom he idolised like no other. His ultimate bedtime
fantasy! He waited in increasing trepidation and embarrassment as he
watched her walk over the sprung flooring towards him. He could not help his
face blushing as he watched her progress. Her skirt swayed sexily against her
long lithe legs, and her high heels clicked ominously against the flooring as
she approached.
She
looked at his blushing countenance. "Ah, Colin, you are next to see the
doctor. Come with me please." He blushed more deeply as she spoke to him.
Her appearance and firm tone were obviously causing him great consternation.
"You are wearing just one item of clothing... is that correct?"
His
cheeks suffused immediately into a deep shade of crimson. His voice stammered
as he answered. "Er... erm... Y'yes Miss Webster." He felt belittled
as she looked down at his shorts... almost, as if to see that he was being
truthful.
There
was a moment of realisation for Colin's delicate emotions. The awkward
juxtaposition of his own near nakedness... and her beautifully dressed and
alluring personage. Her confident appraisal of his near naked body. Her
withering look as her eyes glanced over his body, lingering over his bare legs
and chest before moving slowly upwards to examine his blushing face. Her
expression mildly sardonic and perhaps even amused. "Well come along then
Colin, let us not keep the doctor waiting."
She
turned and led him towards the far end of the hall, which, was entirely hidden
behind the green scrub screens.
What
Colin did not know, was that Miss Webster was entirely emboldened by the
doctor’s surprising encouragement and approval of her role in the examination
of her young pupils. As each boy had been examined, the doctor had encouraged
her more and more. Making sure of her full involvement into the intrusive and
intimate physical participation of every boy's examination.
To
her delight, the resultant exploration and occasional punishment had completely
subjugated and humiliated each timid boy. Every boy that had left the gymnasium
that morning had been blushing and shivering in absolute and undiluted shame.
Their emotions had been stretched to breaking point as each one had been
thoroughly probed inside their quivering bottoms and then deftly masturbated.
This had been accomplished so nonchalantly and so comprehensively that their young
bodies had shivered and shaken violently.
Colin,
of course, was completely oblivious to the fact that the doctor was an
extremely pretty girl of only twenty-five-years - or that the slender and
smartly-uniformed nurse, was extremely young and attractive, and, in fact,
looked so pubescent and tender of years, that the very thought that such a
sweet girl could even be looking at a naked young boy, seemed to be a travesty
of the common mores of decency. Miss Webster knew that he was in for a shock...
but even she was unaware of the severity of it.
"Come
along Colin, through the screens and turn to your left." Colin gasped as
he saw the pretty young nurse seated upon her chair. Her face broke into a
smile as she saw him. Her voice sounded sweet. "Colin Zimmerman?"
Colin
could hardly speak as he looked at the slender and intriguing nurse. Surely she
seems far too young to be a nurse, he thought in his initial sudden
embarrassment. "Er... Yes Miss... erm... Nurse."
"Right,
young man. Stand in front of me and put your hands upon the top of your head,
with your palms turned upwards and your fingers interlaced."
It
took Colin a moment to gather himself. It seemed so incongruous that a girl so
young, had spoken so authoritatively... and she had even called him 'young
man'. It took him several moments to contemplate and eventually obey the
instruction.
It
was Miss Webster that spoke next. "Good boy, now keep still."
Miss
Webster moved to his side and placed her left hand on top of his clasped
fingers. Almost as if giving a benediction. "Now keep still for the
nurse." She had learned a lot this morning. Her action at gripping his
hands would, she knew, pre-empt his involuntary but entirely natural reaction
to the nurse suddenly stripping him bare.
The
nurse reached forward. Deftly she took a firm grip of his shorts and swiftly
pulled them down to his ankles.
"Ooh!"
The
boy's gasp of shock was music to the nurse's ears. She spoke firmly. "Lift
your foot please, Colin." Her hands were already grasping his left ankle
as he lifted his foot in an almost automatic reaction. "And the other one
please... there we are. Right stand with your legs well apart while I have a
good look at you."
His
initial reaction was to swiftly lower his hands. However the sudden increase in
the firm pressure of Miss Webster's grip upon his fingers, stifled his sudden
instinct.
"Come
along one metre apart.... and keep those hands firmly upon your head."
The
nurse sat back and looked up at him. "I am Nurse Neville. You will address
me as Nurse and you will obey my instructions quickly and without hesitation.
Do you understand me, Colin?"
Miss
Webster saw the delayed blush creep up to his face as he slowly absorbed the
fact that he was standing naked with his hands upon his head in front of a
pretty and very young nurse - as well as his revered, beautiful and exquisite
Pastoral Tutor. He suddenly felt a reluctant shiver of shame rush through his
body. He felt stupefied... utterly embarrassed and nakedly vulnerable, as if
somehow he had been turned to stone, petrified in place with dire and acute
embarrassment.
To
Colin, it just seemed so wrong. The nurse seemed to be no older than the girls
in his class. He looked at her in astonishment. His eyes almost reluctantly
capturing every detail.
Her
body was slender and petite. Her nurse's uniform was a white tunic that seemed
to be tailored, almost skin-tight to her body. The material was very fine and
seemed to cling to her. Her, lightly tanned legs were bare from mid-thigh right
down to the tips of her pretty toes. Upon her feet, she wore only a delicate
white leather sole which, was held to the foot by slender straps. Intriguingly,
the white leather straps seemed to snake sexily upwards, mesmerizingly
intertwining themselves several times around each ankle before being halted by
the neat bow which, was tied at the rear of each of her smoothly shaped calves.
Her
face was pretty to the extreme. Her fair hair was pulled back neatly, showing
the fine contour of her jaw-line. Her eyes had only a little mascara which, she
barely needed to accent their beauty. Her nose was refined and petite and
underneath, the pretty mouth was small with exquisite lips which, were
amplified by pale pink lipstick. Her teeth which, showed white and perfectly
shaped when she smiled, were firmly closed. Her pretty face was at the moment
revealing her impatience.
The
nurse looked past his blushing face and towards Miss Webster, who was standing
at his side with the fingers of her left hand tightly gripping his.
The
nurse spoke quite casually, almost bored in her delivery... but her meaning was
quite clear to Miss Webster. "Would you be so kind as to remind this young
man, that I have already asked him to place his feet one metre apart."
"Of
course Nurse." She tightened her grip on his hands and quickly began to
spank his bottom. She had no time to observe his look of pure shock, as she
fiercely spanked his naked buttocks.
"Smack... smack... smack," she spanked both cheeks, one after
the other. She did not seem to be at all perturbed either in effort or emotion.
She merely continued; smack... smack... smack... smack... her expression was
quite implacable as she bent to her task.
She
progressed her chastisement quite nonchalantly. She ignored the boy as he began
to lift his legs in a fevered and reluctant response to evade the stinging
slaps. One leg after the other in a child-like movement, lifting and twisting
as if he were dancing. She spanked, and spanked, diligently chastising the
tender and beautifully pliant cheeks of his bottom. The loud spanks followed
each other incessantly. She deftly applied her hand to his bottom until both of
his cheeks were painted a bright red. Eventually she stopped and surprisingly,
her voice betrayed no evidence of any physical exertion whatsoever. She spoke
quite softly to him with her lips very close to his ear.
"Now
Colin, are you going to be good and pay attention to the nurse when she tells
you to do something?" She let go of his hands and moved towards the nurse.
She noted a tear running down his blushing cheek as she looked into his eyes.
"Well Colin?"
His
utter stupefaction and anguished humiliation welled-up inside him. Oh no, how
could the unthinkable happen? Miss Webster had spanked him while he was naked.
Shame-faced, he looked at his beautiful young Pastoral Tutor. His lips were
quivering in deep emotion and utter shame as he answered her.
"Oh,
Yes Miss. Please I am so very, very sorry." He could not believe that the
very person that he had idolised for so long, the very person that he swooned
over every time he saw her, could have spanked his bared bottom like a young
child. Oh the shame, the utter shame of being spanked by the beautiful and
sophisticated Miss Webster. How belittled and humiliated he felt... spanked while
he was totally naked!
Jean
looked at the young nurse, wryly observing her prurient enjoyment at the sight
of the young boy being so thoroughly spanked. She turned her head to Colin and
looked deep into his eyes before speaking softly to him.
"Alright
Colin, Sweetie. Let us start over. Now listen to the nurse... and then do as
she asks. I am so embarrassed by having had to spank your bare bottom. So
please be good and behave like a big boy for me." She stroked her hand
down his cheek, catching the wetness with her fingertips. "There, there
poor baby, never mind your spanking is all over now. So listen to what the
pretty nurse says to you. Do it for me, Sweetheart."
Colin
was cocooned in shame... and yet she had called him sweetheart. Her soft voice
and babying words had placed him in heaven - and yet his own humiliation and
shame had placed him in purgatory. He looked at her, his eyes pleading, like a
young child. "Please, oh please Miss, I promise I will be good."
Jean
Webster looked at the nurse and smiled in satisfaction at how well she had
handled the boy. Nurse Neville had felt a deep and satisfying thrill stab
through her slender frame as she had watched the boy wriggling and dancing, his
penis swinging wildly from side to side, as he was being comprehensively
spanked to obedience by his beautiful young tutor.
The
nurse spoke to him. She felt no guilt at her prurient interest in him, or that
she was encouraging and inveigling the beautiful Miss Webster to be a
co-conspirator to her delicious predilections. Beautiful fourteen-year-old boys
are such a delight!
"Hands
firmly on your head, legs wide apart and eyes looking straight ahead. Got
it?"
The
boy obeyed; his face betraying his anguish and shame as he spread his thighs.
Eventually he managed to adopt the exact position that the young nurse had
required of him. His body shivered in total humiliation. There was even a tinge
of guilt in his shame at displaying himself so brazenly, even though he had
been forced to do it with a deep reluctance.
Miss
Webster stood beside the young nurse's chair. It was the first time that she
was able to relax and examine the naked boy, who to his chagrin, was standing
so rigidly and obediently in front of her. His legs were spread wide, slightly
wider than a metre, and his hands were placed firmly upon the top of his head.
She pulled up a chair next to the nurse and
adjusted her immaculate skirt. She wanted to show her pretty knees to best
effect. She delighted in knowing that her hair and make-up were as impeccable
as her crisp white blouse. Her stockings emphasized the innate beauty of her
legs, and as she placed her dainty feet to the side, the tips of her slender
high-heels glinted like stilettos in the strong lights of the hall. She knew
that she looked perfectly groomed, and was totally cognizant of the
demoralising effect that this would have upon the naked boy.
Inwardly
she was thrilled. Of course it would be impossible for her not to have known
that the young boy worshipped the ground she walked upon. He had been mooning
over her for the past year. This poor boy, standing naked for inspection after
having been spanked by the very object of his affection. How deliciously cruel!
At
her leisure, Miss Webster examined every inch of his body. His flesh was smooth
and flawless. She noted that his hairless chest was nicely contoured and
descended to a firm abdomen and flat stomach. She also noticed that his nipples
seemed to be unusually erect for a boy. Her eyes dropped so that she could
minutely examine the intimate jewels, hanging freely between his firm and
smoothly muscled thighs.
Her
thoughts were awash with succulent anticipation. My, how lovely is the virgin
genitalia of a fourteen-year-old boy. She noted each aspect of his shameful
exposure. His pubis was almost hairless, just a singular fine line of two
inches running up down to the root of his penis. Everywhere else was quite
bereft of hair.
His
penis was smooth and plump. It rested, almost peacefully, over the bulging sac
of his testes. Probably five inches, she thought pragmatically. The head of the
penis was nicely visible, but not quite to the corona. The neat line of the
foreskin just covered the ridge. A perfect circumcision.
Oh
the poor boy. What on earth is in store for you? How much better to be asked by
the doctor to hold the plump testes of a young boy whose emotions run so high.
Surely he will faint with embarrassment when the object of his naive dreams and
desires is holding the two plump symbols of his boyhood in the palm of her
hand. Miss Webster, was delighted as the boy quickly glanced towards her, his
shame all too apparent. Well, she thought wickedly, compared to the other boys
that I've examined and fondled today, you my boy, are going to be handled far
more intimately.
How
sumptuous and beautiful is the apparition of his pale genitalia. How delicious will the first touch be? To
jiggle and fondle, to squeeze and manipulate, to play and arouse, to toy with
both his flesh and his innermost emotions. What a feast for one's ultimate and
wickedest proclivities; and how nice,
that such pale virginal flesh is being displayed with so much shame and abject
embarrassment. She looked at his face for confirmation. Tearful eyes and
blushing cheeks that displayed every nuance of his anguished nakedness and
humiliation. Oh my what utter mortification for a fourteen-year-old naked
Adonis!
Nurse
Neville arose from her chair and moved to her desk. She picked up her
stethoscope from the surface and placed the earpieces around her neck.
Nonchalantly she stood in front of the boy. "Chin up, I want to take your
resting heartbeat."
Miss
Webster felt a sudden frisson of delight at her words. What humiliating
exercise would the slender young nurse choose for his elevated heartbeat?
Jumping Jacks, running on the spot, sit-ups! What was in store for the poor
naked young boy?
Colin
stood in absolute terror as the nurse placed the delicate palm of her hand
against his chest. Her slender fingertips and painted nails were touching his
right nipple as she placed the cold metal diaphragm against his bare skin. Her
pretty face was almost touching his blushing cheeks as she proceeded to move
the shining metal over his left nipple. He shivered, feeling her uniform brush
against the very tip of his penis. He had never been so close to a young girl
before. Her left hand seemed to caress his nipple as she tilted her head so
that her cheek rested against his.
"Right
Colin, deep breaths, come along now. In... out... in... out."
Guilt swept across his face as he breathed
deeply. Suddenly he felt his penis twitch. He knew the feeling intimately. His
guilt was manifested in a deep sigh of despair as he felt his first stirring of
sexual arousal.
"Deep
breaths, there's a clever boy."
OH
MY GOD, he thought in absolute panic. What if she see's me?
Nurse
Neville knew exactly what was happening to the young boy. His nipples had
already hardened into two overt nubs of erectile flesh. She moved her body from
side to side in two deliberate and provocative movements, so subtle, that she
was sure even Miss Webster could not have detected them. She could feel the
front of her tunic rubbing delicately against his penis and knew that a full
erection would not be far away.
Impudently
she moved back and looked into his face. "Right Colin I will just have a
little listen to your back. Stay exactly as you are."
Deliberately
avoiding looking down, she moved to stand behind him. She knew that Miss
Webster would now have a full view of the result of her cleverly contrived,
stimulation.
"Deep
breaths again please, Colin."
His
deep breathing was punctuated by a gasp as he felt his penis begin to throb
with arousal. He was aware of the weightiness of it, but dare not look down.
Miss Webster caught his eye. She had that knowing and slightly sardonic look
upon her exquisite face as she murmured encouragement to him.
"Well
done, just do what the nurse tells you. My you are being good!"
Nurse
Neville put down her stethoscope, leaving it around her neck as she looked down
at the boy's reddened buttocks.
"Oh
you poor thing... your bottom is still bright red." She smoothed her hand
sensuously over his bare bottom cheeks, her fingers impudently slipping between
the crevice. She felt him shiver with trepidation at her searching fingertips.
Suddenly she slipped her hand in-between his cheeks and slid a delicate finger
over his sphincter. She quickly followed with two more, pressing the soft pads
firmly against his opening and applying a series movements that she knew would
awaken him to the possibility of further intimate explorations of his body.
She
left him and moved around his trembling body to rejoin Miss Webster.
The
nurse faced him, but still did not look at his erecting penis. Instead she
looked into his eyes and addressed him kindly. "Right Colin, tell me. Do
you know how to do sit-ups, jumping-Jacks and running on the spot. You probably
do them all in your Gym Class, don't you?"
Colin
was so embarrassed he could hardly speak. As far as he was aware no one had yet
looked down and seen his penis. He was sure by now that it must be almost
erect. He dare not look at himself, for fear of drawing their attention to it.
He
blushed as he answered. Not for a minute thinking of why she had asked him the
question. His mind was entirely upon the shame of his burgeoning penis.
"Er
yes... erm, Nurse, we do all three exercises... erm, sometimes for warm
up."
"Oh
good, well you can start with sit-ups. Now I want you to lie down on the floor
and do twenty for me. Remember that the important thing is continuity, so as
soon as you are finished with your sit-ups, jump up straight-away. Don't rest,
get straight up, and start running on the spot until I tell you to stop. Then,
go right in to your jumping Jacks. I want to really elevate your heartbeat.
Right off you go, lie down facing me. Quickly now."
The
nurse's words immediately quashed any hope of salvation from his guilt and
shame. All they had to do was look at his groin and see the shameful evidence
of his erection.
It
was Miss Webster that suddenly burst his bubble. "Quickly now Colin, don't
worry about your stiff little penis."
Miss
Webster turned to the nurse. "Is it common for young boys of Colin's age
to become erect? It seems to me that the this young boy seems to have
absolutely no control over his little penis."
The
nurse smiled, delighted that Miss Webster had chosen this particular direction
to further humiliate the young boy. Calling it a little penis was a
masterstroke of belittlement. The boy's penis had erected to a good eight
inches. She could see that Miss Webster was equally impressed. She watched her
turn her attention towards the embarrassed boy.
Jean
was indeed impressed with the solid throbbing erection of the young boy. She
moved to stand over him, watching as he crouched down.
"Come
along stretch out flat, hands behind your neck. A full twenty please. Now
hurry, or the nurse will be cross with you... and you know your little bottom
is still quite red, don't you? Do you wish to embarrass me further by making me
have to spank you over my knees?"
Colin
immediately obeyed. Stretching his body flat against the floor with his hands
clasped behind his neck. He raised his torso in a rapid movement until his
forehead was almost touching his knees. He felt the stiff shaft of his penis
rub and then press rigidly against his abdomen as he reached the completion of
his first sit-up.
The
nurse watched him avidly. She knew full well the embarrassing results that this
exercise produced. She had had young boys perform it many times before. She wondered
when Miss Webster would eventually realise what was actually happening to him
with each sit-up.
It
was about the tenth repetition that Miss Webster turned to the nurse and
whispered softly in her ear. "Forced masturbation. Why you wicked little
nurse!"
As
Colin lay back ready for the next sit-up, Jean could see that his penis was
jerking rapidly. The flesh was visibly throbbing and his bulging scrotum had
pulled upwards between his straining thighs. His stomach was heaving and his
face was a picture of utter blushing confusion and shame.
The
Nurse saw the danger. Her voice clear and sharp. "That will do Colin.
Quickly on your feet and start running on the spot. Hurry now." The
nurse's crisp command seemed to galvanise the boy into action. They both
watched as the boy jumped up and immediately began running on the spot. His
penis was so stiff that it seemed to merely wobble and sway in the air. Making
no contact at all with his thighs or his torso. The benefit, Miss Webster saw,
was that his testicles hung lower with his concerted effort, thus averting his
impending ejaculation.
The
nurse whispered to Miss Webster. "Phew, narrow escape I think Jean."
She
watched the boy for several minutes and then stopped him with a raised hand.
"That
will do Colin. Hands on your head and legs spread. Quickly now." She put
the stethoscope to her ears and immediately moved forward as the boy placed
himself in exactly the same position
that she had requested. His face was flushed with embarrassment and exertion.
Nurse Neville placed the diaphragm against his chest and listened for a few
moments before standing back.
"Miss
Webster, will you take the tape measure from the desk and hold it for me while
I get the clipboard. I need to take his body measurements. I need the
measurement of his penis first while it is fully erect. Then I will take the
rest of them if you will fill in the results. Hold the tape against his pubis
and measure along the top of the shaft to the very tip."
The
nurse watched the boy's look of astonishment and embarrassment as his beautiful
tutor moved to stand in front of him.
Colin
Could not believe what was about to happen to him. His delicate emotions could
not cope with the nurse's pronouncement. Surely not! He could not help looking
in to the beautiful face of his tutor. He felt an acute and undeniable shiver
sweep through his body.
Never
had he felt so much shame... or guilt. He knew that he looked at is if he was
deliberately standing with his penis fully erect, as if he was presenting it
for measurement. Nothing could have been further from the truth. The truth was
that his reluctant erection was the most embarrassing thing that he could have
ever imagined. He did not understand why he had become erect. He knew little of
the clever psychology that the nurse and Miss Webster had used to ensure that
his guilty manifestation would present itself so blatantly and successfully.
Delicately,
Miss Webster placed the tip of the tape tightly against his pubis and stretched
the tape along the shaft until she could hold it against the tip of the
urethra. "Well done, Miss Webster. Can you give me the measurement?"
Jean
could feel the boy tremble with emotion, his penis throbbing beneath her
fingers and his body trembling in shame. She nonchalantly read off the measurement. "Eight and a half inches or
twenty-one and, well just over a half, centimetres."
"Excellent.
We will be using inches rather than centimetres."
Colin
felt his eyes well-up. He could hardly countenance the shame he felt. It seemed
like a bad dream. Miss Webster's delicate hand had touched his penis and
casually measured it. The shame of it made him shiver.
They
both seemed to ignore him as he stood nakedly displayed as he had been
instructed. His hands were pressed tightly to his head and he stood with his
legs, spread widely apart. His utter anguish and humiliation was centred on his
penis which, was jutting forward and throbbing up and down for all the world to
see.
He
soon had their attention again. The Nurse had taken the tape measure and, with
her body occasionally pressing against his, proceeded to measure every inch of
his body, reading off the results for Miss Webster to transcribe. He shivered
and shook as her slender body pressed against his, sometimes deliberately he thought.
Her
delicate fingers seemed to touch him so intimately that he was constantly
titillated and aroused. Her hands brushed against his thrusting penis and
bulging scrotum incessantly while she measured the circumference of his thighs
in three different places.
As
she stood back, he thought that she had finished, only to have his hopes
cruelly smashed. He quaked as he heard her words, his eyes darting frantically
to Miss Webster as the embarrassing instruction was given.
"There
that seems to be nearly everything apart from the inseam of the legs. I have to
measure from the Perineum to the Talus which, is the juncture of the thighs to
the ankle. Can you just leave the clipboard for a moment and stand to his side.
I want you to hold his penis and testicles up and away from the juncture of his
thighs, so that I can get an accurate measurement."
Miss
Webster thrilled as she heard the instruction. She could almost feel the boy's
fear and apprehension as she moved towards him. Here was her prize, those delicious
bulging testes and that, oh so hard and beautiful throbbing penis.
Colin
quaked and shivered as Miss Webster stood next to him. He dare not look at her.
He held his head back to look upwards as he felt cool and gentle fingers
carefully encase his scrotum. He gasped as suddenly those intimate and delicate
fingers squeezed him gently.
He
could feel the pressure of her palm underneath the scrotal sac as she pulled
his testes forward and upwards. Then to his horror, her other hand suddenly
wrapped around the shaft of his penis and squeezed the flesh firmly as she held
it up against his stomach. He shivered and quaked in shame as she spoke softly
to him as if he were a young child.
"There
we are... nothing to fret about sweetie. Keep still like a good boy, while the
nurse measures those little legs. I am not squeezing too hard... am I sweetie?
I don't want to hurt your little testicles. I am just going to lift them up a
little bit more so that the nurse can get the tape-measure in-between your
legs. There is that alright, sweetie?"
Colin
gasped as she squeezed and fondled his testes and his penis. Her hands were
never still as she moved the flesh this way and that. He gasped out loud as she
suddenly slid her hand down his penis as if she was milking him, retracting the
foreskin until he knew by the intense sensation that he had been fully stripped
back and was now comprehensively and shamefully exposed to her view.
He
felt that he was about to expire with shame. Never had he thought that such
humiliation was possible. He felt a tear run down his cheek. His lips began to
quiver and tremble as she held him, conspicuously and prominently bared.
Miss
Webster thrilled and thrilled as she examined the captive flesh in her hands.
She held his foreskin, stretching it back tightly so that the glans was fully
visible. The pale flesh throbbed in reluctant arousal and his body shivered in
utter embarrassment. She ran her thumb over the tip of his urethra. One single
stroke seemed to affect him as if he been electrocuted. He shook violently!
"Now
sweetie," her voice warned, "keep still for the nurse." She ran
her thumb over the tip once more. His intense shiver thrilled her so.
The
nurse had taken her time with the measurements, allowing Jean to have her way
with the boy. Eventually she stood up. She took his chin in her fingertips and
made him lower his head to look at her. Her words shamed him.
"Well
we are obviously not going to be able to take a urine sample while your penis
is so stiff, you naughty boy. So will you bring him to the scales Miss
Webster?" Jean was still holding his genitalia. Gently she let him go very
gently and looked him in the eye. "Come along young man, let's get you
weighed."
The
nurse quickly cleared the last results while Miss Webster stood him on the
appliance. "Now stand under the measure and we will get your height."
The
Nurse looked over to the screens where the doctor conducted her part of the
examinations and then spoke to Miss Webster.
"Would
you like to go through and just check whether the doctor has finished with the
last boy of the standard examinations. If she hasn't I don't think she will be
long. I can finish up here. I only have his bloods and BP to do."
As
Miss Webster walked through, she was surprised to see the last young boy lying
upon the examination table. She wondered why as the doctor had not used the
examination table for any of the other boys that morning. He had been the most
immature of all the fourteen-year-old boys that the nurse had prepared for the
doctor. Frankly Miss Webster was surprised that he was still here.
Doctor
Patricia Robbins turned from the foot of the examination table. "Oh Miss
Webster I am glad you have finished. Would you give me a hand? This young man
is rather less developed as I am sure you noticed. I am going to get him to
express some more ejaculate. He has never ejaculated, until a few moments ago.
His semen was a little congealed, nothing for him to worry about of course. But
I would like to make sure that he is clear now. So if you would put this on
your right hand, we can get started. The jar of lubricant is on the table
beside you."
Miss
Webster looked at the boy as she gloved up her right hand and then lubricated
the Latex fingers. The boy was laid, face upward, with his legs being spread
widely by the stirrups. She noted that the table was fully automatic, etched
and gleaming on the side plate was the name 'Elansa'. She looked further down
the blushing boy's body. His groin was completely bereft of hair. His penis,
which was of a reasonable length. Probably nearly six inches, she thought. The
flesh was flaccid and lay resting on his testicles. She looked at his face
which was absolutely bright red. He had tears in his eyes and looked very
apprehensive.
The
doctor continued. "I would like you to penetrate his sphincter with two
fingers and then turn your hand upwards. If you would use the pads of your
fingers to push gently against the prostate, please. I will tell you when to
increase the pressure and speed." She moved around his spread legs and
stood at his waist. "If you move forward in-between his thighs please Miss
Webster we can begin."
Jean
thrilled as she moved in-between the legs of the prostrated boy. She spoke to
him softly. "Just relax sweetheart and we will just make sure you are
functioning properly. Nothing to worry about, so just relax your little bottom
for me. Miss Webster saw that she had the boy's undivided attention. He had a
pretty and likeable face. His embarrassment was overwhelming him, but she could
see that he was listening to her every word. She noticed that he had tried to
lift his bottom, as if naively offering it to her. The gesture, thrilled her to
the core.
"Here
we go sweetheart." She pressed two fingers gently against the opening to his bottom. Surprisingly, both
fingers slipped up into him with ease. My
word, Doctor Robbins must have penetrated him very thoroughly to have
facilitated such an easy entry! She heard him gasp, but of course that was
to be expected. She turned her hand as she pushed up and felt the tell-tale
walnut shape of his prostate.
"There
we are Timothy, what a good boy you are. Now this may make you wriggle a little
bit, but don't worry I will be so gentle with my baby boy."
Her
words had a wonderful calming effect upon him. The Doctor looked at her and
nodded in recognition. "I think it would be nicer for little Timmy if his
pretty Pastoral Tutor were to be the one to hold his little penis for
him."
The
doctor saw the surprise on Miss Webster's face but nodded her head towards the
boy. It was true, Timothy was gazing at his beautiful young tutor in absolute
rapture. There was no question of it!
The
doctor spoke softly to her. "You can see that I'm right. Just let me
stiffen him up for you and then if you will take over. You will soon starting
feeling the co-ordination between his penis and prostate."
The
doctor nonchalantly grasped the young boys penis, immediately making him gasp
with shock. Deftly she took the head of
his penis between the finger and thumb of her left hand. She stroked her
other hand down the shaft, drawing the foreskin tightly down to the base. She
held the shaft upright, keeping the head fully exposed.
Miss
Webster watched as the doctor flattened her free hand and applied the palm to
the tip of the urethra. In a slow circular motion, she lightly rubbed the palm
sensuously over the very tip. The sensation caused an immediate and violent
reaction.
"Pleeeeese... nooo... oh." His whole
body stiffened in sudden alarm. His plaintive cries drew her attention to the
intense physical anguish of the timid young boy. Miss Webster felt a sudden and
quite violent pulsing deep inside his bottom. The young boy gasped and cried
out loud. "Ooohh,,,ssssss." Miss Webster could see that the doctor's
ministrations were causing the young boy deep distress.
Callously,
the doctor rotated her hand three more torturous times. The third time, the boy
almost managed to raise his bottom from the bed, such was his distress and
anguish. "Ooohh pleeeease nooo."
The
doctor completely ignored his distress as she spoke to Miss Webster.
"There we are all ready for you." She took her hands away from the
boy to reveal his upright and firmly throbbing penis. "There we are
Timothy, now that didn't take long at all did it!" She nodded for Miss Webster
to proceed.
Jean
Webster was in her element. She was determined to elicit the maximum sexual
response from the young boy. She knew that her words and voice would play a big
part in arousing his susceptible and naive boyhood. She also wanted to assess
the physicality of the relationship between his prostate and his penis. She
curled her fingers until the pads of her fingers were pressing against his
plump prostate gland and then she began to quiver them against the sensitive
gland as if they were a vibrator.
Whatever
her instincts had told her, the results were entirely positive and immediate.
He groaned in deep sensation even before she had the time to reach forward and
quickly wrap her slender fingers around the firm shaft of his penis. She continued
the quivering of her fingers and at the same time began milking his penis, each
stroke, pulling the pale foreskin over the head while applying a firm pressure
as it passed over the ridge of the corona.
"There
we are sweetheart, promise to give me nice big sample now. Can you feel my
fingers inside your little bottom? Just a little more pressure sweetheart, my
fingers are deep inside you."
She
managed to increase the speed of her quivering fingers and also the pressure,
both at the same time. The effect was
irresistible. "Is that what is making you wriggle so? There we are, sweet
baby, you can't help yourself can you, let Miss Webster squeeze her little
boy's penis and make him just wriggle and wiggle! Just a little more pressure
in your bottom. Ooops... there we are. Now be a big brave boy and give me nice
big sample.
"Ooo,
oh Miss Webster, ooOOH."
The
boy's voice was child-like with the acute sensation being applied to his penis
and the thorough, overwhelming exploitation of the sensitive nerves within his
bottom. It seemed that his virgin prostate gland could not withstand another
moment of the intrusive vibration of her fingers deep inside him. He gasped and
cried out. "hoo...oooOOH."
Without
further warning he ejaculated violently. Semen shot explosively from his penis
- and was immediately caught by the calculated and experienced hand of the
young doctor - straight into her waiting test-tube. Pulse after pulse
splattered against the glass.
Miss
Webster was well pleased with herself. She had forcefully extracted an
anguished emission of thick, fresh creamy semen from her young schoolboy. In
essence, she thought. I have plundered the fruits from the loins of my
fourteen-year-old pupil.
Blackness
suddenly descended upon the boy with expulsion of his last anguished emission.
"The poor boy, I think your expertise has overwhelmed him, Miss
Webster." The doctor spoke kindly to Jean Webster. There was a touch of
merriment in her voice.
"I
am glad I asked you to do that, Miss Webster, I am thoroughly seized of the
notion that Pastoral Tutors should have a greater and far more intimate
physical knowledge of students within their charge. If you think about it. What
is the greatest problem, facing fourteen year old boys? The answer of course,
is puberty. So wouldn't it be a nice idea, if , in addition to your Pastoral
Interview, you were to arrange additional interviews within the nurse's office
so that, both you and she, could examine the student to assess their
development and determine whether they have a problem - or may be susceptible
to a problem in the future."
She
ran her fingers down the young boy's chest. He did not move or murmur.
"Take Timothy here. You can see how immature he is facially, and yet look at his genitalia." She
gently took hold of his plump and still turgid penis. "You see, he has
obviously reached puberty sexually, and yet the rest of his masculine
development is lagging well behind." She cupped his scrotum in her hand.
"Think about it Miss Webster, I could write a note to the headmistress
suggesting the merits of such an interview." She smiled mischievously.
"Just so that we could put it on a more official footing if you see what I
mean."
She moved towards the boy's head and gently
stroked his cheek as she continued her conversation. "Now to the present,
I may make our NAG candidate express at least two samples. So I am pleased that
you are on hand."
The
boy moaned and showed signs of regaining his senses. "I could sense that
you were feeling your way with Timothy, if you will pardon the pun. But you did
very well and implanted a sense of bonding between you, and your student. As I
have said, he is not yet mature, but he is already showing signs of good
physical development. I think he might
retain many of his pretty features too!"
She
stroked his cheeks as he managed to open his eyes and look up to the young
doctor.
Miss
Webster and Doctor Robbins helped the young boy from the couch. Jean had
discarded her glove and now had both of her hands gently stroking Timothy's blushing
cheeks. "There we are Timothy, you look fine." She planted a tender
kiss on his forehead and was rewarded with a look of pure love and
supplication.
The
nurse came through just as the boy was leaving. "Oh you have finished with
him. I can take the dividing screens away now. Then I will replace the paper
sheet on the examination table. I have left Colin to try and compose himself.
He seems rather overwhelmed at the moment."
Miss
Webster could not help looking at Patricia Robbins and give her a quizzical
look. Patricia was already smiling at the nurse's words. Obviously knowing
exactly what the emotional state of the
young boy would be."
"Oh
you do surprise me nurse." Yes we can certainly get rid of the dividing
screens as we only have the two additional boys to process."
It
was five minutes later that the doctor was standing in front of the trembling
young Colin Zimmerman.
"Right
Colin, let's get you examined. There is not much left to do, so chin up and we
can get you finished up."
Miss
Webster stood back and examined the young boy. Her eyes taking in every detail
of his juvenile naked body. The only part she couldn't see was his genitalia,
which was covered by his firmly clasped hands. His face had coloured back to
the deep hue which, both the nurse and she had produced earlier from their own ministrations. She did
not feel it her place to intervene unless asked. She watched as the doctor
approached him.
To
say that Colin had been left to compose himself might have been true. If the
appearance of Doctor Patricia Robbins had not been such a shock for the young
boy. Why in this world of equal opportunity, he might have thought that the
doctor would naturally be male, he did not know. But for the doctor to be the
young and extremely pretty young woman that now stood before him, had
completely shocked him... and had certainly expunged any hope he had of
controlling his emotions.
Patricia
Robbins rarely dressed any differently when visiting schools. She was
responsible for boys of private schools and academies across all of the state. Her experience had
taught her that an authoritarian but
demure look worked best. She had no false modesty as far as knowing that she
was extremely good looking and she made sure that she put her face and figure
to good use.
She
was not overtly glamorous, instead she had the rare neat features and grooming
that exuded an instant superiority. This did not put the opposite sex at their
ease, far from it. In the case of young boys, her beauty was consummately
intimidating.
Today
she wore a dark blue silk blouse which, seemed to cling to the curves of her
torso. Her breasts were firm and full, especially for her slender stature. Her
navy skirt was made of an expensive Sea Island
Cotton in a matching dark blue. The hem of the 'A line' came to just
above her knees.
She
wore stockings rather than pantyhose. Her firm thighs were ideal for the
hold-up style and she enjoyed the freedom it gave her. She took immense
pleasure in wearing French cut panties and had no intention of giving up her
favourite lingerie, for the convenience of pantyhose.
Her
shoes, perhaps might have seemed a little too delicate for business-wear, but
she had never had any hesitation in choosing a delicate and slender shoe. The
heels were tall and the entire effect of her outfit was most alluring. Her
ensemble was topped by a pure white lab coat which, she wore fully open. It
sometimes flared behind her as she walked quickly, but gave her the air of
authority that she required. There was a name badge on the lab coat, but as the
fine white cotton was worn completely openly, the badge was barely visible.
She
wore fine wire glasses which, became ideal frames for the startling limpid
green of her eyes. Miss Webster had been aware from the moment that she first
met the young doctor, that the boys would be putty in her hands. Malleable and
perfectly soft to mould as the young professional medic saw fit.
Miss
Webster watched her weave her magic on the young Colin Zimmerman. What a
contrast it was. A naked fourteen-year-old boy waiting to be examined by a
beautiful, assertive and confident young female doctor.
Patricia
had walked quickly as she approached the boy and had come to a standstill in
front of him. She had observed his blushing face, a deep fusion of redness
which, had already spread to his upper chest.
Her
voice was smooth and firm as she called to the nurse. "Oh if you would
please nurse bring the larger RT to the examination couch. This young man looks
as though he might have a high temperature."
She
turned back to the boy and beckoned him. "Come with me Colin and bend over
the couch so that your chest is flat against the surface." She watched the
boy hesitantly follow her instructions.
"No,
not like that Colin, bring your arms up and lay your head on them." She
hesitated until the boy obeyed.
"Now
spread your legs wide and stay still." She looked as the boy struggled
shuffling his feet.
"No,
no... not like that, wide apart. Come along now. There, that's better. Now keep
perfectly still while I take your temperature. You look as if you might be
going down with something."
Whatever
had gone before, paled in comparison to what he now realised was going to
happen to him. The young doctor had unnerved him completely. He felt so
belittled and humiliated. She was going to take his temperature like one would
do to a child. She would see his most embarrassing parts. She would surely be
looking at him between his legs.
She would see his penis and his testicles
from in-between his legs!!!
Colin
was conscious of his particular hate of having his rectal temperature taken. He
remembered when he was nine years old and his mother had looked at his face,
felt his forehead and sent him to bed. She had come up to his room a little
while later with his older sister, who was twelve. His mother had sent Rachael
to prepare the thermometer, while she made him turn over on his tummy. She had
casually pulled down the bed covers, quickly following with his pyjama bottoms
which, she pulled down and off his feet leaving him naked apart from his
tee-shirt.
When
Rachael had returned, his mother had instructed her to lubricate his bottom
with her finger and then grease the thermometer and insert it. He could not
believe how deeply his sister had penetrated him before withdrawing her finger
and inserting the thermometer which, she left inside him for five minutes. She
had taken it out and read it to his mother.
His
mother's instructions to his sister had shamed him as she announced that she
had to be at work and so Rachael would look after him. She instructed Rachael
to repeat the procedure every hour and ring her if his temperature became more
elevated. On several of the occasions Rachel had come and pulled back the
covers and had removed his pyjamas’ while he was laid on his back, completely
exposing his nine-year-old penis and testicles.
Eventually,
she had made him leave the bottom's off altogether. She told him to now to
present himself lying on his back when she was ready to take his temperature.
Then he was instructed to hold his legs with his arms wrapped around the backs
of his knees and pull them tightly to his chest. Colin had nearly died of shame
every time she made him do it.
Once
he was in position with his knees pressed to his chest, she would push her lubricated
finger up into his bottom as abruptly as she could. Each time she became
bolder, adding a second finger and pushing further than before, until both her
fingers were buried up to the very hilt. The worst thing was that she would
grasp his penis and testicles and hold them up out of the way. He was sure that
she had deliberately touched him in such a way as to ensure that she made his
penis become fully erect while she penetrated him. This was repeated every
hour. The whole procedure had gone on for two days and Colin had never
forgotten that experience of five years ago.
That
was the year that Rachael had gained entrance to the academy. The following
year Colin was put forward by his mother and was tested in a national
competition for places. To his mother's pride and delight, he beat every
entrant. His mother boasted of his achievement but his sister had let him know
that the last thing she needed was a little brother at school with her.
"How cool is that... NOT." She would say. This year after they had
made her a prefect she had seemed to have adopted a little more pleasant
attitude.
Now, his worst memory was happening again, but
in far more embarrassing circumstances.
Miss
Webster observed the boy's dismay. His face which, was turned towards her,
showed his complete embarrassment and apprehension.
The
doctor quickly slipped on a Latex glove and waited as the nurse held out a jar
of lubricant. "Now keep still Colin, you are, I believe, in a perfect
position for Miss Webster to smack your bottom if you don't behave. Now just
relax while I lubricate you."
The
doctor was deft and practiced. Miss Webster heard the boy grunt loudly, and was
surprised to see that Doctor Robbins had immediately penetrated the tight ring
of his sphincter. The boy began to move his hips with the sensation of it, when
Miss Webster stepped forward smartly and delivered a loud smack to the boys
bared right buttock.
Colin
felt a further blush of humiliation. The doctor's fingers had entered his
bottom so suddenly and with such nonchalance, that he felt humiliated beyond
belief. The feeling of her fingers slipping so quickly into his bottom was a
feeling like no other. How could she? And to top it all Miss Webster had
smacked his bottom in front of the pretty young doctor. Colin wanted to squirm
and twist, but dare not make a move. Here he was, bent over the examination
couch, with the doctor's fingers buried up to the hilt inside his bottom. He
felt utterly invaded and violated. It was if no part of him was private or
sacrosanct.
"Now
keep still Colin." Miss Webster could not contain her surprise as the
Nurse opened a leather bound box and extracted a chromium and glass
thermometer. The bulbous end must have been at least, one and a half inches in
diameter. The nurse quickly lubricated the bowl. Her hand smoothing around it
lovingly as if it were a penis.
The
doctor withdrew her fingers. Miss Webster had no idea how many fingers she had
used to penetrate the young boy. But she must have been satisfied that he had
been stretched wide enough to accommodate the huge thermometer. The doctor
quickly grasped the device and pressed it firmly against his sphincter.
"Oooohh...
umph." The boy's protestation was ignored as Miss Webster saw the thermometer slide up into his anus.
"There
we are Colin!" Now I am going to leave that inside you for a few minutes
to see what is the matter with you." She let go of the thermometer and
reached between his legs, quickly clasping his bulging scrotum in the palm of
her hand. "Tell me if you feel any pain in your penis or your testicles
will you Colin." She forced her other hand between his legs and grasped
his penis. "Some boys often feel a sensation here. It is nothing to worry
about so just relax until we can get a reading."
Colin
had had nothing but the embarrassing memory of his sister's intrusive
impalement of his bottom, to prepare him for this. His bottom felt stretched
and full. It seemed to have affected his penis and testicles too. He had felt
his penis throb as the doctor had perfunctorily grasped it without any warning. This moment seemed
to be a revelation to the young boy. He now knew that she could do with him
exactly what she desired. He had no choice available to him. He had to accept
it... no matter what!
She
patted his bottom and rejoined the nurse and Miss Webster. She smiled, nodding
towards the boy. "I will give him five minutes. As the thermometer is
large, it sometimes takes a time, however it is very accurate. Far better than
the electronic ones. Some of the sensors they use these days, vary quite a few
degrees from each other."
Colin
closed his eyes with the shame of it all. He felt the huge intrusion in his
bottom. He had no idea why, but the sensation of the pressure within his bottom
seemed to be stimulating his penis. He could feel his penis expand and begin to
throb - and with each throb the shaft seemed to be erecting entirely against
his will. He knew, as soon he felt a hand stroke over his upturned bottom and
the voice of the doctor, that his penis had become fully erect. He felt his
lips begin to quiver in shame.
"Come
along Colin. Relax your bottom while I remove the thermometer."
He
had no time to do anything as suddenly, his sphincter was stretched wide and
the thermometer was removed. He presumed it was the doctor patting his bottom
as she instructed him to stand upright.
She
did not wait for him to turn, but merely took his arm and turned him to face
the nurse and Miss Webster. Before he could cover his modesty, the doctor spoke
firmly to him.
"Right
Colin, hands upon your head and legs wide apart. I want to check you for a
hernia."
She
watched the boy blush. Her words seemed to have the boy almost in tears as she
spoke nonchalantly to Miss Webster.
"Will
you keep an eye on him please. If he hesitates to obey me, I would like you to
give him a sound spanking. Would you do that for me please Miss Webster?"
She
sat on her chair, obviously not expecting a reply from Miss Webster. She looked
up at him and then let her gaze drop so that she was looking directly at his
penis and testicles. "Right Colin wider please and keep those hands where
they are, on top of your head. Do you understand me?" She turned her
attention to Jean, who was now standing to the side of the boy after the
doctor's request.
"Don't
you find it strange Miss Webster, how little boys seem to have no control over
their little penises." Miss Webster smiled at the doctor. "Perhaps it
is just that they are in the process of growing up." She moved around to
stand next to the doctor and looked at the young boy, making sure that she had
his full attention.
"I
had meant to ask you, Colin, at your next interview with me, but I will ask you
now instead. Have you ever played your penis, Colin? Do you make it go stiff
and perhaps spurt into your bed clothes? I have been meaning to ask Matron if
she has noticed any signs of emissions on your bed sheets.
Colin
looked mortified... and Miss Webster noticed he also looked guilty. "Well
Colin, be truthful with me. The doctor will be able to tell me soon enough, so
it is no good telling fibs. Do you play with your penis Colin...do you
masturbate?"
Collin
just wished there was a hole in the floor, in which he could fall into. He had
never been so embarrassed or had so much female attention focussed upon him. He
looked anxiously around. Both the nurse and the doctor were looking at him.
Both of them seemed to have a knowing look. His lips trembled and there was a
tear in his eye as he answered.
Erm...
Yes Miss Webster. I really am sorry."
Miss
Webster felt sorry for him too, but felt she still had to ask the question.
"When do you do it, Colin.?"
"Oh
Miss, erm at night."
"Well
what do you do with your emission. Do you let it go on the sheets? And how
often do you do it?"
"Oh
Miss I have only done it five times, and the first time it went on the sheets,
after that I used some tissues."
Well
five times, seems a lot Colin. How many times a week do you play with your
penis?"
"It's
been twice a week, ah for two weeks since I found out, ah, what happens Miss. I
am sorry Miss."
"Well
Colin, you are in serious trouble. You must have realised how naughty you have
been. I shall have to punish you of
course, but there is also the serious matter of your genital health."
"The
doctor has suggested that any boy caught masturbating should, after his
punishment of course, come and see me for a special interview. There are a lot
of serious problems that can occur when left to your own devices. You are never
to do it again. You are to desist totally. I will make urgent arrangements for
you to come and see me. I assure you Colin, it is a very real problem.
Colin
just managed a reply such was his absolute shame. "Yes Miss Webster."
Colin
was in the depths of embarrassment and despair. The nurse looked at him and now
the doctor's face was looking very stern. She spoke to him firmly. "You
have been very naughty Colin. Masturbation can cause your penis to mal-form. Do
you understand, under no circumstance are you to ever do that again. Do you
understand me?"
"I
promise Doctor, I am very sorry."
"Well
I am sure that Miss Webster will not tolerate self abuse and I am quite sure
that you will be punished for it. But I must tell you that it is harmful and
you must be put under Miss Webster's control. Do you understand me?"
Colin
was almost at the end of his tether. He could not believe that he had admitted
to masturbating. It was the end of any self-esteem he might have had. Shame
upon shame seemed to have been heaped on him. He could not even contemplate
trying to assuage the guilt of his most secret clandestine activity.
"Right
let me complete the hernia check and examine your penis and then the nurse can
get you in the stirrups for your urological check."
Miss
Webster looked at Colin and then at the Doctor. I think Doctor Robbins, that I
had better deal with the boy here and now. Would you excuse me please. I am just going to use the internal phone on
the wall over there. Please carry on with your checks.
Miss
Webster walked to the end wall, giving Colin a severe look on the way.
The
doctor placed her hand, palm-up, between his legs and raised her arm. She
ignored his shiver of embarrassment as she took his bulging scrotum into her
cool hand. Her fingers grasped him firmly as she instructed him.
"Cough
please."
Miss
Webster, after talking for several minutes on the phone, returned in time to
see the doctor asking him to repeat the cough for the tenth time. The doctor
still seemed dissatisfied with Colin's awkward performance of a cough.
In
fact she had merely procrastinated until Miss Webster returned. She really
wanted her to witness the examination of the boy's penis. It would coincide
with what she had in mind to subjugate the and let Miss Webster see the
problems associated with pubescent boys.
I
am going to ask you again Colin, I want a very firm cough. Now let's try again
shall we!"
"Cough,
cough." She squeezed his testicles firmly for the last time and finally
let him go.
Suddenly
behind them, the door to the top half of the gymnasium opened. This was the
door they had been using to exit the pupils that had been examined and were
going back to their classrooms.
Colin
heard the door and dainty footsteps approach. He was just about to look around
anxiously, to see who had entered. "Eyes front please." The doctor
firmly admonished the naked young boy. "You will stay as you are, young
man. I think you are in enough trouble already."
The
doctor took a firm hold of his erect penis and without a moment's hesitation
retracted the foreskin. Her fingers slid deftly down the shaft baring the
sensitive head. Colin shivered as he was skinned back totally. The Nurse
quickly stood to his side and placed her hands on top of his, in the same
manner that Miss Webster had demonstrated earlier. She held him firmly as Colin
became aware of who the visitor was.
"Why
thank you, Francis. She looked down smiling at the young girl who handed her
the paddle."
Colin
could not believe it. It was Francis, Richard's younger sister. What on earth
was she doing here, while he was being so embarrassingly examined by the young
doctor.
No, No, This can't happen. My God!
She is only thirteen. This should not be happening!
The
young girl spoke. Her innocent voice sending waves of shame rushing through the
naked boy's body.
"Are
you going to punish him Miss Webster?"
"I
am afraid so Francis, he has been a very naughty boy." Miss Webster did
not object when the young thirteen-year-old girl, moved further forward and
looked at the young doctor holding Colin Zimmerman's penis in her hand.
Francis
was thrilled to be there. She could see that his foreskin was pulled back and
that the head was bared fully. She looked at his blushing face and trembling
lips. She could see that she had his full attention. His look of immediate
recognition changed quickly to shame and guilt. Francis, quite deliberately
lowered her eyes back to his genitalia. She carefully examined the exposed
Glans-Penis, carefully noting how tightly the doctor was retracting his
prepuce.
"I
bet it's for playing with his penis." The girl's innocent statement shamed
Colin to the core.
The
doctor looked up. "Why do you say that, girl?"
"Well
doctor. My brother told me that Colin Zimmerman has started playing with his
penis. Because he asked my brother if he did it... and he doesn't; play with
his penis, I mean." The doctor looked at the girl again. "Who is your
brother?"
Miss
Webster interjected. "Oh, Doctor Robbins, this is Francis Chambers, she is
Richard's, sister. He is the boy you are examining for the NDP exam."
The
doctor's eyes, closely looked the pretty girl's body up and down. She could see
immediately that the girl was quite beautiful. Her blonde hair hung over her
shoulders and her face was so neatly featured that she had no doubt that her
brother would be similarly superior in body and face.
Colin
could not believe this conversation was going on while he stood naked in front
of the young girl. Oh the shame! She had looked at him while he was standing
naked with his penis fully exposed. He could not believe that they would allow
it. Francis, his best friend's little sister, she was only thirteen-years-old
and he was being forced to stand there naked in front of her. He looked down at
the doctors hand. It was holding the erect shaft of his penis tightly. Even
more shamefully, the skin was pulled right back and the head was entirely
exposed.
"I
sometimes wish Richard would play with his penis, erm... well masturbate
it." The girl's statement took Miss Webster and the Doctor completely by
complete surprise. Her voice was so innocent and the subject matter hardly
seemed appropriate for one so young.
Miss
Webster was going to ask her to elucidate, but the doctor spoke first.
"Why do you say that Francis?"
"Well
I know Richard gets stiff. I mean his penis gets stiff. So I looked it all
up... everything I could find out about boys and their 'Peenies.'"
Patricia had to smile at the childish term, but felt absolutely enthralled and
intrigued to ask more. "Tell me Francis, what do you mean, that you wish
Richard masturbated. You know what that is do you?"
The
girl looked directly at Colin's throbbing erection. "Oh yes Miss. Richard
is very shy and would never do anything like masturbate. But he is very bright,
well everyone here is. But sometimes I can tell that he has an erection and it
puts him off his work. I know it is not good for a boy to masturbate because it
can affect the shape of his penis. It makes them bent and all sorts of
different shapes. I looked them all up. Penile Hypospadias was the worst one,
but I know them all. I read that there are all sorts of other shapes and curves
which are caused from boys playing with their peenies, when they have been
doing it wrongly."
Well
you have the right word for one of them, Francis. But why did you look them up?
Well
I wanted to know how to exercise a boy's penis, so that I could offer to do it
to Richard's penis, properly. I mean, I know it sounds odd, but it needs doing.
I mean look at Colin's penis, I can see that it is red behind his prepuce. He
obviously doesn't know how to do it properly like I do. He doesn't even use
cream by the look of it, no wonder he is sore! It says in one of the texts, I
read, that boys don't even know about their prostate glands or any of the
erogenous zones of the male genitalia."
The
doctor kept a straight face at the forthright way that she had looked and
commented about Colin Zimmerman's penis. Patricia could not help looking at
Miss Webster, who was as equally intrigued by the thirteen-year-old as she was.
"I
know that I would never let myself break the school rules, or let Richard break
them either, not that he ever would, he is such a goody, goody. So I was going
to go and see the headmistress and tell her... about Richard's penis problem. I
mean he is really bright, and it would not be right for his work to suffer over
such a little thing. I know exactly what to do to him to force him to spurt his
stuff. I mean, you know, milk him so that I empty his semen and his sperm. He
would not be able to resist the sensation. I know every erogenous zone in a
boy's penis, and lots more of the other ones around the genitals. I know all
about the nerves in boy's bottoms too! I have studied them all."
"Just
one more thing, Francis. You say you were going to see the headmistress. What
were you going to say?"
The
doctor, the nurse and Miss Webster, were all dying to hear what the pretty
young girl's answer would be.
"Well
Doctor, I was just going to tell her about him trying to hide how stiff his
peenie gets in the classroom, and ask her."
"What
exactly, were you going to ask her?" Doctor Robbins was not going to let
her stop her story just yet.
"Well,
I was going to suggest that she let's me exercise and milk his penis for him,
erm... in the mornings so that he can concentrate on his work. I can also
continue and do it to him in the vacations as well, as we only have an Aunt at
home. We lost our parents when we were young. So our Aunt has looked after us
since we were little. I know our Aunt would understand straight away, she is
very practical. Or alternatively, if perhaps the headmistress would instruct
Miss Summers, the school nurse to do it to him while he is at school - and I
would do it to him when we were at home."
The
doctor was amused at the girl's innocent reply. She was almost satisfied but
not quite. She decided to take a renewed grip on Colin's penis, just to
embarrass the boy further.
"Oooo..oH."
His reaction was predictable as Patricia bared the head to an even greater
extent. The girl's innocent idea about masturbating boys had obviously aroused
him even further. His penis throbbed quite dramatically as she displayed even
more of the head.
"Francis
dear, you mentioned the boy's prostate gland. What did you mean about boys not
understanding its function? Oh and how would you know if you were masturbating
him too much... or too little.
"Well
I read that the most efficient way to get a lot of semen, is to massage the
prostate gland as well as the penis. And I would know from the amount of semen,
I mean if the quantity went down or up, whether I needed to milk his peenie to
make him spurt more times, or less."
"Yes
Francis, your idea is certainly not without merit."
"Well
I was going to ask the headmistress to order Richard to acquiesce to being milked by me. He can be stubborn."
Francis
had one more thing to say before she stepped back to Miss Webster's side. She
turned and looked at Colin and stepped forward towards him. Her pretty blonde
hair swished across her shoulders and settled as she looked him in the eye. She
saw him blush profusely, but ignored his embarrassment.
"Honestly
Colin, you are such a total dweeb, doing it yourself! Look what you have done
to it already. How stupid to play with such a nice penis, when you don't know
what you are doing. I mean look at it. You were probably far too rough and, I
bet you did it without any cream at all. Just fap, fap, fapping like a total
perve. You deserve the paddle for being such an idiot!"
She
said it so innocently that the doctor and the nurse could hardly keep their
faces straight.
She
stood back at Miss Webster's side. "If you are going to paddle him now,
Miss. Shall I wait while you do it to him, and then take the paddle back to
your office when you have spanked his bottom with it?"
Miss
Webster, was just going to tell the girl to go back now, but instead she looked
across at Doctor Patricia Robbins, who's shrugged, more or less telling her
that the girl could stay, if it was alright by her.
"Yes
Francis, you can stay while Colin has his paddling. It will embarrass him
knowing that you are bound to tell all the girls that he was paddled, bare
bottomed and over my knees for playing with his penis. I also think that he
will be more aware of his shameful experience, especially if he knows that you
are here watching him while he is spanked. It will be a far more salutary
lesson for him!"
The
pretty doctor spoke to the trembling young boy. "Well Colin it seems that
even your friend's little sister has the same diagnosis as I do. Your penis is
sore under the prepuce, that's your foreskin by the way, because you have been
tugging the skin up and down, without cream and probably far to roughly. Had
you continued in the same manner, you would have also found that your penis
would have become distorted, over time."
She
turned to Jean. "Miss Webster. Are you ready?"
Miss
Webster, certainly was. She held the paddle upwards as she gestured for the
nurse to help her with Colin. He was already near to tears as Miss Webster took
a chair and seated herself comfortably. "Come along boy, over my knees
now." She saw the doctor quickly flip a towel towards her, covering her
skirt, just as the boy was bending forward. Miss Webster smiled in gratitude as
the boy reluctantly prepared himself to be tipped over her knees.
Colin
was nearly crying as Miss Webster, with the help of the nurse, got him well
positioned over her pretty knees. She slipped her free hand beneath him and
adjusted his throbbing erection so that it was trapped in the towel against her
thighs.
She
laid the paddle on the small of his back and stroked her right hand over his
trembling buttocks. Impudently she pulled the flesh of his cheeks apart,
chastising him verbally as she slipped the whole of her hand between the cheeks
of his bottom. "Come along Colin, no cheating now, relax those cheeks."
She
spent several moments, enjoying the luxury of having a beautiful young boy over
her knees, ready to be spanked. Her fingers deliciously toyed with the cheeks
of his bottom until she could prolong it no longer.
She
picked up the paddle and raised it. She did not want to hurt the young boy, as
she was sure that he would already remember it for the rest of his life. She
added to his shame by speaking to Francis.
"Francis,
why don't you come and hold his head. You will be able to see everything and
you might give him a little comfort while I redden his little bottom."
Francis,
could not believe her luck. She came around to the front of Miss Webster and
scooted down onto her knees. She took the blushing and tearful boy's head in
her hands and made him face towards her. She wiped some of the tears from his
cheeks.
Francis
spoke to him, her voice innocently pouring more shame upon him. "Poor
Colin, you have been such a silly boy. Fancy playing with your own little
peenie. I would have done it for you far more nicely, and I would have arranged
it properly with all the proper creams and my finger right up inside your
bottom. And it would have been official! Now look at you! Having your bare
bottom paddled by Miss Webster. I know you really like her. All the girls know
that you worship her! Aren't boys silly getting into trouble for no good
reason!"
Colin
was in turmoil, completely weighed down with the heap of shame, and yet he
could not deny that the thought of Francis playing with his penis had excited
him. And, what did she mean by having her finger right up inside his bottom.
What on earth would that feel like. Then suddenly he remembered the thermometer
and how peculiar his penis had felt, as if
the inside of his bottom and his penis were connected.
Everyone
watched avidly as Miss Webster proceeded to punish the boy. The first stroke
came down intentionally hard, so that the boy would think that all the strokes
would be as severe. It was a trick Miss Webster had learned over her two years
of teaching.
"Smack...
Smack... Smack... Smack... Smack..." The spanking was good and sound, but
brought far more humiliation than pain. Colin was firmly ensconced in his own,
tightly fitting cocoon of utter shame. How could it have happened that the
beautiful Miss Webster had taken him over her knees and was spanking his bottom
with her paddle.
He
could not distance himself from his shameful predicament as he was constantly
being reminded, by the paddle and the humiliating words of the young girl.
Miss
Webster spoke, her voice steady and completely detached from the movement of
her arm. "I hope you are not trying to clench the cheeks of your bottom
Colin. I shall continue until you are most thoroughly chastised. It is supposed
to hurt Colin. That is to ensure that you remember to be good in the
future."
Miss
Webster's words hurt him just as cruelly as the paddle. The wooden implement of
chastisement descended in a constant and painful shaming.
Francis
looked into his tearful eyes. "Why don't you try and present your bottom
to Miss Webster, so that she knows you are really sorry. Try and raise it to
her paddle. She is only doing this to your silly bare bottom, because she wants
you to grow up to be a good boy." Francis stroked her hand over his cheek,
gently wiping away his tears.
The
nurse was absolutely intrigued with the boy's paddling. She looked closer after
she heard the young girl speak to the boy. She was amazed to see him earnestly
trying to lift his bottom upwards.
Miss
Webster saw the boy's movement too, immediately feeling a thrill run up her spine as she felt him raise his bottom.
It was as if he was actually presenting his bottom to her. His buttocks seemed
to part slightly as he strained to please her.
Miss
Webster's voice was soft and caring as
she spoke. "My you are a good boy Colin. I promise it won't be long now.
So take my punishment, you know I am doing it to make you into an obedient
young boy."
She
stoked her other hand over his back in a loving gesture, while never faltering from the steady cadence of
her paddle, incessantly spanking the raised cheeks of the boy's tender bottom.
Patricia
Robbins could see her young nurse's avid interest in the boy's spanking. Well,
well she thought, I learn something new every day. I think there may be a few
young patients getting reddened bottoms from now on.
It
was really Francis that brought the boy's spanking to a halt. Her comforting
words were heard by all. "Oh at
last Colin, you are really crying now. Good boy. I am sure that Miss Webster is
grateful to you for raising your bottom and embracing her punishment. I bet you
never get yourself in trouble again!"
*
Within
the confines of the Headmistress's well appointed office, Miss Hartman welcomed
the young girl as she closed the door behind her. "Hello Francis, before
you talk to me, can I tell you that the Doctor has been on the telephone to me
and is coming up to my office right now. She has told me something of what you
are going to discuss with me, so perhaps we should wait until she get's
here."
The
Principal looked over her desk to the single chair which, was placed in front
of her desk.
"Would
you be so kind as to bring another chair up and then take a seat,
Francis."
Miss
Hartman was thirty-five-years-old. She was beautiful, in the classical sense,
Having clearly defined patrician features. Her hair was tied back from her high
forehead into a practical chignon. Her graceful neck descended into a fine
cotton open collar. The white blouse, was smart and tightly tailored to the
contours of her full breasts and narrow waist.
Her
hands which, now rested upon the surface of her desk, were slender and finely
boned. Her fingers were long, with fingernails polished but not coloured. Her
hips were in exquisite proportion to her torso and her firm thighs and small
feet, were exact to the precept of classic beauty. She was without doubt, a
delicately formed female of the highest order.
She
ruled the Academy beautifully, accepting only those that were highly gifted
academically, and who possessed some social skills and physical co-ordination.
Miss Hartman had realised at an early age that being attractive and gifted,
certainly ensured a quick ascent to the highest echelons of life. This
objective was the prime aim of the academy.
The
Principal's private secretary knocked once and then opened the door for Doctor
Patricia Robbins. Miss Victoria Hartman, stood up behind her desk and leaned
across to shake the young doctor's hand.
"I
am pleased to meet you Dr. Robbins. I have listened to what you had to say with
interest. I have not talked with Francis here. But I am seized with her outspoken initiative. Please take a
seat and we can both listen to what Francis has to say."
Dr.
Robbins spoke. "I agree Miss Hartman. I am impressed with Francis and
think that the way she would like to help her brother, could be extended to pre
and post pubescent students. So it is best if we both listen to her thoughts
and views."
Not
once were either women condescending towards the young girl. Doctor Robbins
immediately realised that the young principal was well used to the idea of
conversing with young and immature girls and boys whose mental capacity and
intelligence quotient was already at an unusually high academic level. Still
young, but with an accelerated capacity for learning.
The
young girl took her cue immediately. She spoke clearly. "Thank you."
Metaphorically at that moment, Francis took the floor. "I have been
worried about Richard for some time. He is physically capable of an
ejaculation. He doesn't do it, because, boys aren't allowed to... and he would
be too timid anyway. It is affecting his work, you probably wouldn't notice
because he is so bright, but I have. His penis gets stiff quite often and that
embarrasses him and takes his mind off his work. I imagine that when all boys
start thinking about sex, it takes their focus away."
Francis
licked her lips and continued. "I want the school to allow me to... erm...
attend to his penis and make him ejaculate every day. I think it would be best
to do it in the morning, so that he is not thinking about it when he is in the
classroom. Richard is ultra shy, he will even blush if one of my girl friends
say's hello to him. So I want him to be made to obey me while I do it to him. A
compulsory milking and ejaculation!"
Her
young thirteen-year-old body squirmed in her chair as she plucked up the nerve
to carry on and eventually ask for her next request.
"I
have read everything. All the old stuff like Havelock Ellis and Sigmund Freud.
As well as those really old and quite
prurient, Kinsey Reports - and all the other stuff of that period. But the new
texts of, well like, 'The science of ejaculation in newly pubescent males', and
all the new books and papers on the psychology and physiology of young boys,
all bears out the need for less clandestine and more controlled ejaculation for
boys like Richard. So I would like the school to allow me, his sister, to make
him ejaculate every day... even twice or three times if he needs it."
She
wet her lips again. Her bare, perfectly shaped legs, were showing almost to her
panties, as she squirmed around in her chair.
"I
had better ask you now as there isn't much time." They both looked at her
quizzically. I want to make Colin Zimmerman ejaculate, While the Doctor is here
so that she can see if I am doing it correctly. It would be ideal for me... to
see if my theoretical knowledge will work physically... and I want to be really
proficient when I do it to Richard's peenie."
Miss
Hartman looked across at Doctor Robbins. Doctor Robbins spoke confidently.
"I agree with what Francis has said. Even if we were talking about
ordinary children. Not gifted ones I mean. I think it essential. Why should
boys feel guilty and do the wicked deed clandestinely and furtively... often
causing actual harm to the penis. It is a medical necessity and 'milking' the
boys, as Francis aptly describes it, would be an ideal medical treatment.
Therefore, In my view; a controlled extraction of seminal fluid would be
ultimately acceptable. As long of course, that the newspapers do not get to
hear about it!"
Miss
Hartman smiled. "That is one thing that can't happen. Parents or guardians
have already signed confidentiality clauses, because of the long hours of work
that we do here. But our children are far too academically mature to let some
sleazy reporter make scandalous capital of this academy."
She
continued, smiling at Dr. Robbins and Francis in turn.
"I
have decided! Pay attention Francis, this won't be in any rule book. So
remember, these are the rules.
Any
girl may take authority to masturbate any boy. If: The boy is deemed by me...
or any teacher to be fixated on sexual matters rather than work.
That
she guarantees to take total responsibility for his entire tenure here.
That
the procedure is not used for the blackmail or the teasing of a boy.
That
the boy remain immobile. That is to say, either physically restrained or
acquiescently immobile during the procedure.
That
the girl remains fully dressed and unmolested.
That
the girl is accompanied by one other girl of her choosing. This is purely for
safety, by the way.
That
the academy nurse or a prefect, in addition to the two girl students, monitors
the procedure for the first ejaculation and then every sixth ejaculation. The
girl will responsible for giving notice to the nurse or prefect, of her
impending duty."
Miss
Hartman looked at Doctor Robbins. "Have I covered it?" Doctor Robbins
smiled. "It seems you have taken care of everything. I think it will make
a difference... a real difference to your boys... and one for the better."
Miss
Webster looked at the thirteen-year-old girl. "What do you say
Francis?"
Francis
looked at her head mistress. "That sounds to be right. I think you will
find that the girls do not have a problem with the boys wanting to request a
'quick feel 'or that sort of thing.
They
will be far too embarrassed knowing that the extraction is compulsory.
Our boys are far more sensitive and timid than
boys in state schools, thank goodness; we have got a very decent bunch of male
students. Can I ask one more... well favour really. My hands are small and
according to my repeated reading of anatomy books. I can penetrate a boy's
bottom to reach the prostate, but I won't be able to massage it without getting
my whole hand up.
So
can I use a vibrator? I have researched a bullet shaped device which, can
vibrate and shock a prostate. It was recommended, no, excuse me, mentioned, in
one of the texts that I have read, and it gets over the problem of me being so
small."
Doctor
Robbins spoke. "Excellent a problem solved. If the nation were not so
uptight about all things sexual, we would have all come to this conclusion
years ago. Francis, you don't have to worry about your hand being small. You
will be able to use four fingers quite easily and it will give you plenty of
reach. It will also let the boy know that you have complete control. After you
have used your fingers, you can use a prostate stimulator. The boy will then
realise that you are using a device by choice."
Doctor
Robbins stood up. "Miss Hartman, I have left Miss Webster with Colin
Zimmerman. May I take Francis back down with me, so that she can put her theory
into practice?"
Miss
Hartman smiled. "Yes you may, but first I want to ask Francis a question.
Francis, what if there was someone else here at school that would attend to
Richard's needs? I understand that she is very skilled and thorough. Would you
be happy with that?"
Francis
looked at the headmistress and smiled. "Yes I would." She paused and
then smiled brightly. "Can I ask who it would be?"
Miss
Hartman held up her hand. "First Francis, I must ask you another question.
Would you be willing to attend to Colin Zimmerman. That is every morning, just
like you wanted to do to Richard? He is a nice boy and well worth someone's
efforts in keeping him on the straight and narrow."
Francis
thought for a couple of seconds and then spoke firmly and seriously. "Yes
Miss Hartman, I would. I like him and think he is a very nice boy... and nearly
as shy as Richard. He is quite mortified at what he has done. But I bet he went
through agonies of indecision before he even attempted it. But like an
addictive drug, he would have continued... so this intervention is the best
thing that could happen to him"
"Well
then Francis you will be well practiced for the next vacation at home. I
thought you wanted to know who I had in mind for Richard."
Francis
was almost giggling as she got ready to leave. "I don't mind as long as
Richard is alright. But I think I know already. She looked over my shoulder while
I was researching all this and then recommended most of the really informative
and elevated medical literature that I have been studying! I do know one thing,
he will absolutely curl up into a crisp with embarrassment when he see's her.
He is absolutely in awe of her."
*
Meanwhile
back in the gymnasium Miss Webster and Nurse Neville were busy with matters of
their own.
Miss Webster smiled at the nurse as they
finished positioning Colin Zimmerman upon the examination table. His legs were
firmly but comfortably ensconced into the leather stirrup loops. They were deep
and allowed no escape, but did allow him some freedom of movement to flex and
stretch his legs forward.
The
nurse was well aware that he would be doing just that within a few moments time.
She looked at his blushing face. She had to put her fingers under his chin to
make him reluctantly turn his head towards her.
The
deep hue of his reddened face and the trembling of his lips, told her that the
boy was absolutely shocked and anguished by his experiences. She knew that he
did not want to look at anyone. She was absolutely sure that his only mental
defence would be for him to distance himself from the embarrassing and deeply
disturbing position that he been made to adopt.
Colin
was, in fact, so utterly shamed. He dare not even look at himself. Even though
he knew the horrible extent of how blatantly exposed his naked body really was.
The
ignominious splaying of his legs had
made him shudder with incredulity. There was nowhere for him to hide his
humiliation and no way for him to hide the bare and deliberate exposure of his
most private and secret parts.
And
now the nurse had made him look at her. Her pretty face bending over him as she
seemed to look into his very soul. Her voice was soft and gentle... and yet
this seemed to cause him as much humiliation as the words she said to him.
"You
don't have to be so embarrassed Colin. This is a quite normal procedure that we
are going to execute. The doctor has asked Miss Webster to carry out the next
procedure, so you can rest assured that you are in good hands. Now, talking
about hands. If you will just lift your head and clasp your hands behind it, I
am going to slip a little pillow under you so that you are nice and
comfortable."
The
nurse arranged him so that the pillow laid over his hands with his head raised
upon the soft foam. The foam was covered with a crisp, white linen that was
particularly smooth to the skin. She knew that it might take a moment for the
boy to realise that with his head raised, he would be unable to distance
himself from the proceedings.
Suddenly
he felt compelled to look down as Miss Webster moved briskly between his widely
spread thighs. He shivered in shame and acute embarrassment, feeling the
intimacy of her touch as she gently stroked her hands upon the inner flesh of
his legs. His realisation that he was so openly displayed, and that she could
freely touch him anywhere she pleased, made him shiver with sheer trepidation.
He
had to look, there was just no escaping it. He shivered at the sight before
him. His legs, shamefully spread wide to the extreme, making a V-shaped frame
for her beautiful torso. He could not take his eyes off the sight of her body
bending forward, almost pressing against the intimate and shamefully bared
juncture of his thighs. He saw her tilt her head and examine his genitalia. Her
beautiful face was only inches away from the shameful exposure of his bared
penis and testicles.
He
was aware of the nurse proffering an opened jar towards his beautiful tutor. He
watched Miss Webster raise her right hand which, was gloved in Latex, and
slowly dip her fingers fully into it. He saw the fingers glisten as she moved
her hand down low between his legs. He shivered as he felt her fingers suddenly
slide impudently between the trembling cheeks of his bottom.
"Ooooh
Miss." He could not help exclaiming, embarrassed beyond belief at what she
was doing to him. "Just stay still Colin. I am now going to penetrate deep
inside your bottom. There is no cause for alarm. I will take good care of
you."
He
felt her fingers gently explore the opening to his bottom. His sphincter
recoiled in spasms, clenching wildly as her fingers began to probe the opening.
"Hoo... Oooh Miss."
"Now
the trick is just to relax and let your bottom go slack, I know you can do it
for me Colin. Just relax now."
"Hooooooo."
His exclamation was cut short as her fingers slipped into him. Incredibly,
three fingers had simultaneously entered his sphincter, dilating it rapidly.
"Just
relax this may feel a little intense, be a brave boy." Her words were
spoken softly and caringly. This was a callous contradiction to the firm
pressure of her fingers moving inexorably upwards into his bottom.
"Hooo
Miss." Her words accompanied the turning of her wrist as her fingers
addressed the smooth plumpness of his prostate. "Sometimes little boys can
feel a funny sensation, when their bottoms are fully penetrated Colin. So just
relax now as I am going to begin your procedure."
"Hoooo...ooooh."
Colin had never felt anything in his young life to prepare him for this. He
could not help looking down at his body. To his horror he saw his penis
erecting as if of it's own volition. He felt a violent throb. It was a
sensation like no other. A sensation equally shared, between the inside of his
bottom and his penis. It seemed as if they were both joined together. He saw,
to his shame, his penis throb violently, raising itself upwards from its
resting place upon his bulging scrotum. It seemed to flare and fill out as it
raised upwards.
Miss
Webster was delighted with the acute naive sensitivity of the young
fourteen-year-old.
"There,
Colin. My fingers are in position now, so just relax while I extract a sample
from you. I did notice earlier Colin that your nipples seemed particularly
sensitive. The nurse is just going to check them while I extract a sample from
you." She turned to the nurse, who had already picked up the jar and was
holding it towards her. Miss Webster dipped her fingers and thumb into the viscous
lubricant, delighting in the thought of what was to come next.
"Thank
you Nurse. Now Colin just relax while I perform a thorough extraction. The
Doctor was most insistent that you were to be made to express fully. A thorough
and comprehensive sample. So be a good boy and don't try and evade the
procedure. Do you understand me Colin?"
Colin,
suddenly began to see the light of day. The euphemisms that Miss Webster had
glibly extolled had suddenly become clear. She was going to masturbate him. He
could not believe that this could happen... and yet.
He
shuddered in an absolute torment of shame as her fingers nonchalantly wrapped
around the shaft of his penis. He gasped in utter humiliation as she deftly
slid his foreskin down the shaft until the skin was stretched tightly against
his pubis. With an unhurried and almost casual motion she let her fingers glide
over the exposed head.
He
shivered as the acute sensation seemed to quickly become unbearable. He thought
that she could not possibly know how agonising this sensation was, when to his
horror he felt the first firm pressure of her fingers against his prostate. He
tried to lift his buttocks to escape the exquisite torture as simultaneously,
her hand slid down the shaft of his penis and her fingers seemed to vibrate
inside him.
"Oooohhh...
hoooo... Miss"
Miss
Webster was well aware of his utter distress. She was totally cognizant of the
fact that his few naive and furtively hurried ministrations to his own penis,
could hardly prepare him... or compare to the comprehensive and thorough
extraction that she was now about to perform. She began to firm-up the fine
twitching of her fingers against his prostate. Simultaneously, her left hand
cruelly smoothed over the sensitive and exposed corona of his penis.
The
boy bucked and gasped in an immediate response. Miss Webster saw Nurse Neville
place her hands upon his chest. Casually the nurse took the nub of the flesh of
each nipple between finger and thumb. Exactly on cue with Miss Webster's firm
coaxing of the boys juvenile sensitivities, she squeezed hard and suddenly. The
thrill that ran up her spine was quite delicious. Seeing the boy immediately
shudder violently from head to toe, thrilled her to the core.
She bent her head lower and spoke to him.
"Now be a good boy and follow Miss Webster's instructions."
Jean
looked at the nurse with wry amusement. They both knew that the boy had become
incapable of taking any instruction. Miss Webster felt it immediately, a sudden
change in his body. The heaving chest quickening, the sudden goose-bumps upon
his flesh and the incoherent cry of distress. She looked towards his face. His
mouth was gaping open and yet he still had the ability to blush in profusion as
she caught his eye.
"Good
boy, now just relax." Her words were merely said to further extend his
utter torment. She gauged his reaction carefully, knowingly she watched as his
body gave way to the inexorable impetus to ejaculate. She could see that the
nurse was cognizant of the boy's distress and was already holding the jar. She
twittered her fingers with a deft expertise, now with a decisive firmness that
was not to be denied. Fully contacting the entire prostate gland. She pushed
her hand even deeper as she speeded her slender fingers up and down the shaft
of his penis. Cruelly she spared him no respite from her thorough and cruel
stimulation to his barely pubescent body.
"Oh...oooohhh...
OH." His slender body bucked like a young colt... and yet the beautiful
vision of Miss Webster swam before his eyes. Her dominant female mastery of his
emotions was paramount.
Miss
Webster and Nurse Neville, had his naked body writhing and gasping in a torment
that neither of them had witnessed before. The nurse, who was far more
experienced than Miss Webster in dealing with the forced seminal extraction of
young boys, knew without doubt that this boy would be likely to faint with
emotional exhaustion.
Miss
Webster applied the final ignominy with her firm command. "Come along
Colin, do not try and evade your procedure. I want a full and thorough emission
from you. Come along now."
Colin's
young body suddenly tightened into a
paralytic stricture. His face clearly expressing the exquisite agonising
throes of extreme sexual emotion. His body was tensed as tightly as the strings
of a crossbow. With a climatic stricken shudder, he ejaculated violently and
comprehensively. His semen slapped and burst explosively into the glass
container.
His
ejaculation was a prolonged torturous expulsion, quite unremitting in its
intensity. Cruelly instigated and callously protracted by the firm prodding of
Miss Webster's fingers, deeply embedded inside his quivering bottom.
"Good
boy. Now let me have it all Colin." Nurse Neville looked in astonishment
at the growing level of white viscous semen as the boy continued to ejaculate
into the phial.
His
final emissions seemed to be wrung from his body in an agonising torment.
Wrenched from deep within him. Extracted with a precision and a dexterity that
few women could have achieved.
In
the final throes of ejaculation, the boy's body arched in torment... and as
suddenly, seemed to collapse. The thigh muscles that had strained against the
stirrups, suddenly relapsed into a relaxed elasticity.
"Oooh
oh... oh. Miss Webster." The boy's anguished exclamation was the last
before his body collapsed back upon the examination couch. His chest was
heaving as he drew oxygen into his lungs. He looked at Miss Webster as if he
could not believe what she had just done to him. His head lolled to one side
and he gave in to a somnolent and rewarding faint.
Nurse
Neville looked at the boy and then spoke to Miss Webster. "I must say than
I have never seen a boy ejaculate so violently and emotionally. He may have
masturbated a few times. But I think that this experience was beyond anything
he could have imagined. It was rather like you have taken his virginity. I
think he might even be in love with you. He has certainly got a very large
schoolboy crush on you."
Miss
Webster smiled. I am a bit embarrassed to take another sample from him. That
one was so... erm, powerful. It certainly was rather intense for a young boy,
don't you think?
Nurse
Neville smiled at her. "To tell you the truth it was intense for me too.
What on earth did you do inside his bottom to get him to ejaculate like that.
Miss Webster carefully withdrew her fingers. She held up her hand and showed
the nurse the rapid scissoring of her fingers. She speeded up until they became
a blur.
"My
god, if you did that against my clitoris, I would think that I'd died and gone
to heaven. My God!"
Miss
Webster, looked at the young nurse. "Would you like me to try?"
Joan
Neville blushed massively. Her eyes dropped down demurely before she looked up
at Miss Webster. Her voice was as timid as a young girl. "Oh, would you, erm...
Miss Webster, would you really do that to me?"
Jean
smiled at her. Her lips stayed closed as she nodded her head slowly up and
down. The young nurse dropped her eyes again before she looked up shyly.
"Oh thank you."
Again
the demure coy look accompanied her suddenly child-like voice voice.
"Please, Miss Webster, when you do it to me, may I address you as..." she paused. The final part of the
sentence caused Jean to smile to herself."...Miss Webster?"
"Would
you like calling me Miss Webster?
The
young nurse blushed prettily. "Yes Miss Webster, it would be, well as if
you were in charge... of me."
Miss
Webster, understood perfectly. Her deep knowledge of the human psyche was a
prerequisite for her position as the academy's Pastoral Tutor.
"Well
in that case young Joan. You will have to be on your best behaviour. I don't
tolerate any other kind. It is not unheard of in this academy for me to strip a
young girl like you and spank her pretty bottom until she cries. There are, of
course, some girls that are so lazy and naughty that they can't even be trusted
to bathe themselves. So to make sure that they maintain the high standards that
I demand, I have to bath them. I always make them stand up for the duration of
their bath while I scrub them all over until every inch is scrupulously clean.
And I do mean every inch. Can you imagine what that would be like for a naughty
girl like you?"
Joan
Neville suddenly grinned mischievously. "Oh I can, how delicious that
would be."
She
came around to Miss Webster's side and put her slender arm around her waist.
She leaned against her and said. "What a super time we could have. I would
kiss you now, but I want you to remain in pristine condition until the medical
examinations are completed." She squeezed Miss Webster tightly and lightly
kissed her on the cheek. "Oh I should tell you, strictly between us girls,
that Patricia enjoys girls as well as boys, just in case you wondered."
Miss
Webster smiled. "I am particularly hard on girls that tell tales - and so
I am definitely going to have to attend to that pretty bottom of yours."
It
was a few moments later that the nurse ran the back of her fingers against the
young boy's cheek. "How are you feeling Colin?"
Colin
looked up and blushed to a deep hue immediately. Miss Webster spoke kindly to
him. "Well done sweetie. You gave us such a nice big sample that, if you
are lucky, the doctor might only need one more emission from you."
My
God, its not over! Colin groaned at the thought of the same thing happening
again to him again. It was just at that moment that the doctor walked back into
the gymnasium.
"Sorry
I had to leave you Miss Webster, there were one or two things to sort out with
Miss Hartman. Now what stage are we at?"
Miss
Webster was just about to answer when she realised that Francis Chambers was
standing behind the doctor. The doctor saw her look of surprise. "I will
explain in a moment, but first will you update me?" She said looking
meaningfully towards the boy.
The
nurse came to Miss Webster's rescue. She took the large specimen phial (vial)
from beneath the covering cloth and handed it to Doctor Robbins. The doctor
held it up to read the measurement gauge.
"Well
Colin does seem to be productive. What on earth did you do to the boy."
She handed the specimen container back to the nurse and moved to the side of
the boy.
"Well
Colin tell me how are you feeling." She looked closely into the boy's face
so that he had no way of evading her gaze. The boy mumbled a reply that was not
intelligible. Miss Webster immediately spoke sharply to him. "Colin if you
don't answer the doctor's questions properly I shall spank you so hard that you
won't be sitting down for a week."
Colin
quickly came out of his stupor and looked at the Doctor earnestly. "I am
so sorry Doctor. Yes I am ah... fine, thank you."
"Well
I am imagine you are feeling a little drained after providing such a fine
sample for me." She turned to look at the nurse. "What is his
refractory period?" The nurse looked at her watch which, was pinned to the
lapel of her tunic. "Approximately eleven minutes at the moment,
Doctor."
"Thank
you nurse. Now I need to have a word with Colin." She moved closer to the
boy and laid her hand on his chest. Her fingertips moved across his nipple as
she got his attention.
"Now
listen to me Colin. It is important that you give me your full attention."
Colin was alert now and looked at her respectfully.
"Good.
I see you are more fully alert. Did you faint after your extraction?" The
boy blushed as she referred to his ejaculation.
"Oh
ah, yes Doctor. I think I did." Doctor Robbins was already fully cognizant
of the boy's condition. She knew that it would have been almost impossible for
him not to have attained a high and traumatic level of emotion and the
subsequent momentary loss of blood to the brain. The sample was unusually high
and prolific for such a young boy.
"Well
listen to me Colin. You were spanked because you admitted to masturbating
within the school.. Now I am not going to dwell on your punishment for breaking
the rules. But I am concerned for your welfare and the reasons for you
masturbating regularly. The headmistress has been made aware of what you have
been doing - and is concerned that not only have you broken the rules on five
occasions, but that you were intending to continue."
She looked at the boy to make sure that he was
listening and comprehending what she was saying to him. His profuse blushes
confirmed that he had been paying her full attention.
"Now
Colin, as this is a special academy for gifted children, it would be quite
wrong for you to be preoccupied with thoughts of playing with yourself instead
of preparing for the next day's classes. So to that end, The Headmistress has
decided that all boys that have reached puberty will be assessed for sexual
activity. If a boy is deemed to be within the group that is able to become
preoccupied by sexual thoughts, he will be dealt with."
Colin
looked slightly worried but continued giving the doctor his full attention.
"The
headmistress has decided that boys will undergo a suitable procedure to stop
self-abuse."
Colin
looked embarrassed at her phrasing.
"Yes
Colin that is exactly what it is. Boys who masturbate are abusing their
penises. They are too immature to understand the harm that they can do to their
genitalia. A malformed penis can be with you for life. There is no corrective
treatment. Alas there are other problems too, of hygiene, broken skin, rashes
and infections. So as I have said, you will undergo a procedure, everyday until
you graduate from this academy."
She
could see the puzzlement in his face, but felt disinclined to rush to the
revealing point of her conversation.
"Fortunately
for you boys, the spirit of the school is such that the procedure can be
carried out without undue disruption. It will run almost entirely by
school-spirited volunteers. A volunteer has already been assigned to you... and
from now on this person will carry out this procedure upon your body everyday.
Do you understand me so far, Colin?"
Colin
looked very uneasy and certainly embarrassed at the Doctor's words. "Er
yes Doctor, but who... erm what...?"
The
doctor quickly held up her hand to silence him.
"Colin
please understand me. Are you listening?" The boy looked embarrassed at
her stern gaze. He was also aware that the doctor's hand was gently touching
his nipples as the conversation proceeded.
"Oh
ah... yes Doctor."
"This
procedure is NOT arbitrary. It is not for you to decide who or what! This is
compulsory! The procedure WILL be
performed every single day. You WILL obey the instructions given by the person
that has been assigned to you. The procedure WILL be carried out, no matter
what. This mandate is compulsory for all boys like you. Do you understand
me?" Colin looked quite frightened as the doctor raised her voice to him.
He
spoke quickly. "Yes Doctor... er, I am so sorry, I will do what I am
told."
The
doctor looked at him most sternly. "You most certainly will, young man. No
more nonsense from you. We will start you right now with your volunteer, who
will perform this procedure upon you not only now, but every day hence."
The
doctor stayed still, looking intently into the boy's face as she called out.
"Francis Chambers, would you come over here please and attend to this
rather ungrateful and recalcitrant young man."
"Yes
Doctor, I am ready." The doctor could hardly hide her smirk of
satisfaction as Francis not only stepped forward, but immediately took up
position between the boys widely spread legs. She spoke clearly and firmly.
"May
I proceed, please Doctor. I have something to say to the boy and then I will
start the extraction."
Colin
was shocked and mortified. He literally could not believe what was about to
happen to him. Or... that a thirteen year old girl was to... yes... that was
it! The awful realisation that; Francis Chambers, a thirteen-year-old girl,
would have full absolute authority to masturbate him everyday. And he could do
nothing, totally... nothing about it. How could that possibly be?
"Look
at me Colin, I don't like stupid boys. Stupid boys that play with their own
little peenies and don't understand what they are doing. They abuse their
little peenies and because they are so ignorant of what they are doing, they
damage themselves irreparably."
Colin's
face was the colour of beetroot. How could Richard's little sister talk to him
like that? Or be standing between his widely spread thighs while he was
absolutely naked and spread wide before her. She was so petite, that only her
head and shoulders were visible between his legs.
"Now
listen to me and make sure that you can repeat it back to me when I ask you to,
which, I will. There is a punishment for any boy that disobeys his 'Extractor'
which, in your case is me. Miss Webster, will you tell this stupid boy what the
punishment is for a first offence, in disobeying a direct instruction from the
headmistress?"
Miss
Webster looked at the blushing and shivering fourteen-year-old boy.
"I
am sorry to say Colin, that Francis is right. You would be in contravention of
a direct instruction. That is exactly and precisely the description of the
charge. Disobeying the headmistress! And even for a first offence, the
punishment is...," she hesitated, gulping before she carried on.
"fifty sound strokes of the senior paddle upon the bared bottom.
It
is also mandatory that you would be stripped naked within the school classroom
and in front of the class. Prefects would be assigned to hold you down over the
teacher's desk until each stroke has been properly delivered. I think you already
know Colin, that there would be no mercy shown."
Colin's
indignity had suddenly turned to fright. He knew that he would be unable to
bear fifty hard strokes... and the senior paddle too! His mind was in turmoil.
And he knew that... horribly; that the shame of being stripped in front of the
class, would stay with him forever.
Francis
could see the shock on his face. She spoke clearly but a little more softly.
"Alright Colin, listen up. Are you beginning to understand the importance
of this. Are you with me?"
Colin knew that he had to listen to her. This
slender and delicately beautiful young girl. But a thirteen-year-old that was
barely five feet tall!!! He now knew, to his horror, what would happen to him
if he disobeyed her. It had been clearly spelled out to him by Miss Webster -
and, he knew, that this was a far-too-frightening punishment to even
contemplate.
"Er...
ah.. oh yes Francis."
"This
is what you will do each morning... and this is what you must remember. You
will get up and go to the toilet and sit upon it until you are thoroughly
empty. You will make absolutely sure of this. Next you will brush your teeth
and then shower until you are squeaky clean - all over if you fully understand
the term. You will put your pyjama bottoms back on. That is to say... only your
pyjama bottoms. You will get back into bed and wait for me."
She
could see that he had paid attention, even if he was blushing and shivering
like five-year-old. She continued.
"You
will be back in bed, having accomplished this, by seven a.m. Did you remember
all that?"
"Oh
erm yes Francis."
"One
more thing, Colin Zimmerman. I think your attitude is disrespectful. But, I am
going to give you the benefit of my understanding. I am sure you are probably a
little shocked. But you need to know
this, so get it through your head that: you need this extraction on a daily
basis so that you will graduate from this excellent academy." She paused
for a moment, tossing her long blonde hair over shoulders before she continued.
"I
am volunteering only because I really do want to help you. I can sense your
disrespect because I am only just thirteen-years-old. So, from now on, you will
address me as Miss Francis. You will also address my girl chaperone, or
chaperones, as Miss, whoever she or they may be. You will not let me down
Colin. I will gladly watch you being paddled if you do dare to do that. Do you
understand everything that I have said to you?"
Colin
looked askance, but most of what she said had made sense. He realised that he
must pull himself together. He managed to speak more clearly.
"Yes,
Miss Francis, I understand everything you have said. I promise I will do
exactly as you say."
"Good.
Repeat verbatim, what you will do in the morning?"
Colin
repeated her instructions precisely, word for word.
He
looked at her as he finished his repetition of her exact words. "... ...
... and I will be waiting for you before seven a.m. Miss Francis."
"Good
Colin, I knew that you were really a sweet boy and I assure you that I will
respect you, too." She turned to the Doctor. "I am ready Doctor, may
I instruct the nurse in the same way that I would normally instruct my
assistant and chaperone?"
The
doctor was really impressed. The young girl had thought everything through.
What amazing minds, she thought. The boy had repeated every word as precisely
as she had said it. Truly amazing, she thought. And what a grasp this
stunningly beautiful young girl has on the boy's psyche.
"Yes
Francis. That would be an ideal way of working."
Francis
nodded. "If you would pass the jar of lubricant nurse, I do not intend to
use gloves."
Miss
Webster and the doctor watched and listened to the young girl as she dipped her
hand into the jar of lubricant. Miss Webster noted that Francis had lubricated
her left hand first, almost up to the wrist. Francis Chambers looked at Colin
and smiled sympathetically, almost like a caring young mother would smile down
at her young child.
"Tomorrow
I will ask you to spread your legs and raise your knees. Today, we have stirrups
to facilitate this. Now I am going to penetrate your bottom. It has already
been dilated by Miss Webster, so perhaps this will seem a little easier, I hope
so. Now the secret is to relax and try and welcome the intrusion of my hand up
into your little bottom. Now be a brave boy and help me by relaxing your bottom
hole."
Francis
did not hesitate. Unknown to anyone, she had repeatedly practised penetrating
the virgin sphincter of her young friend, Vickie. She had continued, often
giggling together with Vickie, until she had used up many jars of lubricant,
and perfected her technique. She had also laid on her bed and spread her own
legs, while Vickie had performed the same task upon her. She was delighted to
know how it felt, and had instructed her friend to re-orientate her hand many
times until she was sure that she was familiar with the feelings associated
with each manoeuvre.
"Good
boy, take some deep breaths, in out... in, out. There we are." She felt his body shudder as her fingertips
pressed against his sphincter. She knew what pressure she needed to obtain a
smooth and steady penetration. She did not let his squirming distract her. She
pressed more firmly until finally the sphincter gradually dilated to allow her
four fingers full access. She knew that tomorrow she would have to
pre-lubricate him first with perhaps only one or two fingers.
Her
voice was soft, almost like a mother as she spoke to him. "There, sweet
boy, let me just slippy-slide right-up inside your cute little bare bottom.
There we are, only a few more inches to go, my you are doing well."
She
had plenty of time to admire the smooth form of the boy's buttocks. They were
bereft of hair anywhere. The smooth crevice was splayed open allowing her wrist
total access. Her fingers slipped in easily. It was thrilling to see every inch
of the penetration. She could hear his gasps and moans, but concentrated
totally on her fingers as they majestically made their way up into him. She
could both see and feel his sphincter's involuntary quivering in response to
her intrusion.
She
turned her wrist until her palm was facing upwards, feeling for the smooth
little protrusion. She knew the shape and approximate size from pictures she
had pored over night after night in the academy library.
She
let her fingertips explore gently and carefully so that they did not become
desensitized and perhaps hinder her finding that exciting gland that only boys
have. She had visualised the location of the gland and knew that she would
easily be able to recognize her prey. Almost immediately she felt it. With a
huge excitement boiling up inside her body, she pressed gently and watched his
penis. Just like the books had prescribed, she paused, waiting for the response
that her studies had promised.
His
penis, as predicted, throbbed once. Not overtly but enough movement for her to
recognise and understand the exciting result from one gentle touch. Gotcha! She
thought excitedly.
She
could see that Colin was almost near to tears, she knew that it was wrought
totally from embarrassment, rather than from discomfort.
Time
for arousal, she thought to herself. She abandoned, for the moment, her strict
and rather adult mode of speech.
"There
we are sweetie, look at me Colin. I am going to take hold of your little peenie
in a moment. But first, I am going to feel your plump little balls. I want to
see how full they are. I promise I won't hurt them, I know that testes are
delicate and how preciously little boys feel about them." She hefted the
swollen orbs, delighting in her control over the young bare body of a boy. Hers
to do with as she pleased. To be able to touch and fondle any part of him
entirely at her pleasure. "My haven't you got big heavy balls for a
fourteen-year-old."
Colin
groaned with humiliation and disbelief. Surely they could not allow such a
little girl to play with his penis and testicles. He looked around for help
from the doctor and nurse and then towards Miss Webster. He could not believe
that they were all paying full attention to the young girl. Looking at her with
glowing expressions of admiration. He groaned in despair.
Francis
held the heavy scrotal sac in her tiny hand, revelling in the delight of her
prurient exploration. She thrilled as the bulging scrotal sac tried to recoil
from her cool and sensual touch.
"Just
relax sweetie and let me just jiggle them a little bit, my they are heavy.
Never mind, I will soon empty them for you. Now, don't wiggle and wriggle, just
relax while I take hold of your little peenie-weenie and slip your skin right
down to the bottom. I want to have a really good look at your little helmet.
Are you ready sweetie-pie?"
In
sequence... with her little finger preceding; her tiny slender fingers wrapped
naively around the smooth shaft of his penis. Her fingers were cool and his
flesh seemed to be boiling hot. She could feel the flesh pulsing wildly under
her hand. It seemed to be throbbing in time with his heartbeat. Even before her
tiny hand had managed to properly circumnavigate the throbbing flesh of the
shaft. It was pulsing and erecting mightily.
Colin
quaked with the sensation of her delicate touch. He could feel every nuance of
her fingers. She seemed to know exactly where every sensitive nerve was
located. How could she know so much? Perhaps it was just her naive exploration
that was causing so much sensation. How could a
young girl of her age understand a boy's body more thoroughly than he
did?
"What
a good boy you are Colin, I knew I wouldn't have to smack your little bare
botty. Look Colin, your little peenie-weenie isn't so weenie any more. Oh poor
baby, you are blushing soooo much. Don't be upset, I'm going to start milking
your peenie now so that you don't get any more little stiffys in the classroom.
All the girls have seen you, you know. They know precisely what you have inside
your little red panties. All girls know about boys!" She watched him blush
as she mentioned his red underpants. Suddenly, she stroked her thumb over the top of his
urethra, letting her nail score over the opening. His entire body jerked quite
violently with sensation as she started her task in earnest.
Suddenly,
as she began prodding the plump protrusion of his prostate, her mind flashed
back to the water-pistol fights she used to have when she and Richard were
younger. Her pistol had had a spring on the trigger which, would return it
instantaneously to the firing position. She remembered how rapidly she was able
to squeeze it. Often firing ten shots off consecutively and soaking her brother
before he had time to fire.
"Look
at me Colin." She waited until the utterly humiliated boy raised his
shamefully blushing face towards her. "Because you have already provided
one sample today, I am afraid I am going to have to be a bit more vigorous with
you. So be a brave boy while I make you ejaculate. I want you to produce a nice
full emission into the nurse's jar. I promise you Colin, I won't be satisfied
with anything less. Here we go sweetheart, let's see what a big strong boy can
do!"
Miss
Webster and Doctor Robbins watched the slender young girl. They were utterly
intrigued by her confidence and ability. There she was - standing between the
widely spread legs of a naked boy. A perfectly poised young girl; at ease and
totally in command... and yet, still less than five-feet-tall, slender and
delicately featured and almost childlike in her appearance.
Her
perceptive and knowledgeable actions upon the youthful and naked body of the
handsome boy, facilitated the perfect platform for her to display her skills.
She found she could press, both strenuously and quickly, just like her water
pistol. I wonder if he will be able to spurt as much, she mused.
Nurse,
Doctor and Tutor had watched the abrupt and deft penetration of the sphincter
with the girl's left hand, while they saw her simultaneously and swiftly
manipulate the throbbing penis with her right hand. The tall and athletic young
boy shuddered and wriggled with every sensation. His firm thighs were spread
wide, each thigh was of a far greater circumference than the young girl's
waist... and yet she was in complete control.
They
watched her slim body sway gracefully, as she concentrated avidly upon the
boy's bared penis and his sensitive prostate gland which, although hidden, was
completely defenceless from the slender but intrusive fingers within his
bottom.
Francis
was thrilled, as she watched the boy suddenly jerk his bottom off the surface
of the examination table. His thighs showed his sinews tightening in a natural
reflex to the sudden, firm, and incredibly rapid prodding of her fingers
against his prostate.
"Ooooo..hh.
Miss.... er... Fra.... ahh hooo."
Francis
ignored his frantic and fevered reaction. Deftly she slid her hand down the
shaft. Deliberately she let the heel of her hand brush roughly over the
urethral opening of his penis on each downward stroke. Her hands flew over his
penis, deftly exploring every nerve ending with surprising accuracy. A sudden
prod here, a trailing finger there. Even to one initiated in the subtlety of
arousing the sensitive nerves and membranes of the penis. Her delicacy and
certain knowledge were eliciting responses far beyond the boy's endurance.
She
knew the boy was in torment. She had already discovered certain places and
actions that had made him cry out with utter abandonment. Francis, rather
cruelly, had already inured herself to his anguished groans and laboured
breathing as her fingers flew over his flesh. Sometimes, very gently upon the
corona and tip of the urethra, other times switching suddenly to tightening of
her fingers and stretching the foreskin back to allow a trailing finger to
graze cruelly against the exposed flesh.
She
monitored her progress by looking at his face. She did not intend to let up on
the expert sexual arousal until he ejaculated. She hoped against hope, that his
emission would be substantial and satisfy Doctor Robbins and Miss Webster as to
her competence.
"Oooohh..
pl..ee.. noo.. oooh"
Colin
was in turmoil. The excruciating embarrassment and humiliation of each part of
his examination, building up to the comprehensive and humiliating extraction of
his semen by his beautiful Pastoral Tutor, was now being suddenly and
comprehensively surpassed.
He
felt that he could not bear, the utter anguished shame of being masturbated by
the beautiful and assertive thirteen-year-old. The younger sister of his best
friend. And yet it was happening. As he thought that he could no longer bear a
particular stimulation, she would switch to another, even more unbearable form
of exquisite torture. His mental embarrassment coupled with his physical
arousal, was left with no place to hide, no defence, no respite. She expertly
plundered his body and his mind, of every possible sensation.
Francis
callously prolonged his torment, leading him inexorably to his reluctant and
ultimately humiliating climactic shaming. It would be a damming and humiliating
physical display of his uncontrollable arousal.
How utterly degrading that must be
for him. To squirt his stuff in front of everyone! Worst of all, that it was
me... a thirteen-year-old girl that had MADE him do it!
It
was not long before coherent thoughts had been expunged from his mind. The
necessary physical effort of trying to withstand the devastating and unbearably
heightened susceptibility to exquisite sensual torture seemed to take over his
will.
The
agony of such a prolonged sexual arousal, was incredible. Under such anguished
torment, Colin tried to hold on. He knew that what he was having to endure
right now, at this very moment, had eclipsed anything that had gone before...
or anything that he could have ever have envisaged. Her face and body looked
calm and naive. Her hand and arm movements were barely perceptible. He knew he
would never forget this moment as he saw her tongue protrude from her lips in
childish concentration.
He
could see her look at him enquiringly; so innocently, as she nonchalantly,
wrenched, plundered and extracted exquisite agonies from his body. This was the
most embarrassing moment of all. My God, he thought. She is looking at me for
the sign that I am about to ejaculate, she knows what I will look like, she
knows I am going to have to do it.
Francis
saw his body flex and then suddenly become rigid. He had raised himself from
the bed in a fitful and rigid stricture. To her deep and absolute sexual thrill,
his buttocks had begun quivering against her wrist. His heavy breathing
instantly halted. She felt his prostate pump and his penis become completely
solid. She was delighted with him. Her voice was soft and low as she watched
the nurse hold the container well above her flying fingers.
"There
we are sweetie, nice big spurts now." Francis watched with the utmost
satisfaction and pleasure as the boy's anguished ejaculation fulfilled her
wildest expectations. She could feel every pulse in the shaft of his penis.
Pumping like an impellor through a garden hose.
"Good boy Colin, let me have it all now. Keep pumping it out for
me, that's the way. My you are a clever boy."
She
could feel every nuance of the boy's reaction to the sensations she had
expertly plied upon his openly naked body. She had had complete control over
him, both physically and emotionally, and she had, she felt sure, acquitted
herself well.
Francis
felt the super-rigidity in his penis resolve back to mere hardness. She began
to squeeze from the base and draw quite large globules up to the tip. Smiling
as the nurse scraped them up with the lip of the jar. The frenzied pumping of
his prostate had ceased and so she gently withdrew her fingers and cupped his
scrotum. She squeezed his balls firmly, hearing him gasp at the sensation.
She gently let go of him and nonchalantly
slapped his bottom. "Look at me, Colin." She was delighted with his
haggard look of exhaustion and the fact that he suddenly blushed anew.
"Well
done Colin, you have had a busy day. But you will soon feel the benefit of what
we are doing for you."
The
nurse saw her look across at the jar and knew that Francis would want to see
the results of her ministrations. Obligingly, the nurse leaned forward and
whispered in her ear. "The most I have seen, ever!"
"May
I have the jar please nurse.?"
Colin
looked at her in horror as she held the jar full of his recent ejaculation.
"Good
boy, Colin. Now I will accept no less than this amount everyday. Any less, even
one millilitre and I will begin another extraction immediately. Do you
understand me?" Francis did not look to anyone for permission as she
slapped his bottom three times. "Slap... Slap... Slap!"
"Just
so you know, I will spank you to get the blood flowing to your nether regions,
if you fail me!"
Francis
instinctively knew that now was the time for bonding him to her.
She
let him watch her wipe her hands with medicated tissues as she moved from
between his legs to the head of the bed. Her voice was soft and gentle. She stroked
her delicate fingers against his reddened cheek. As he looked up at her.
"I
am going to take very good care of you Colin from now on, so don't worry about
anything. Clear your mind. Go and have a shower and stop yourself thinking
about any of this. Just concentrate on your work. It is the examinations next
week. I want you to prove me right - and come top of your sciences. I am going
back to work too." She smiled and walked away from his trembling naked
form.
*
Back
in the girl's changing rooms, Richard was blushing profusely. Charlotte smiled
at Judith as Nurse Summers suggested that it was time to change places. Judith
let her fingers slide out of Richard's bottom as Charlotte let go of the boy's
genitalia. To her satisfaction, she had left his penis fully erect and
throbbing. She looked at his face to see that he was swathed in a deep hue of
redness. His lips were trembling and his eyes were closed.
She
had taken him to the brink of ejaculation several times. Once he had been so
close that Charlotte had had to squeeze his testicles so firmly that he had
cried out in anguish. Thankfully, she thought, Judith will not be quite so
cavalier with the boy's arousal. Charlotte, positioned herself between the
boy's thighs. Every time she looked at him, she marvelled at the perfection and
symmetry of his beautiful body. So rare to see such perfection and, so utterly
exclusive to have complete control over his naked form. His modesty, she
realised, was so deeply embedded within him, that every overt sensual touch of
her fingers had elicited a response of pure shame. How
wonderful!
"Right,
Richard. I am just going to get you opened up a bit, so we can get that big
shiny nozzle firmly up into your bottom. We don't want to have any spillage,
now do we? Then while it is filling you, we will get you shaved nice and
bare!"
She
had already realised that what small amount of hair the boy had would not have
interfered with any examination. The little line of hair above the root of his
penis was unusual. The hair was absolutely straight and soft. Most unlike any
pubic hair that she had ever seen. Under his arms too, was the same wisp of
absolutely straight, fine hair.
Almost
reverently she dipped her right hand, and then her left, into the stout jar of
lubricant. It was with absolute joy, that she introduced her fingers into his
bottom. Two fingers of her right hand slipped just inside the dilated
sphincter. These were joined by two fingertips of her left hand. Gentle she
eased the opening wider, feeling the sphincter muscle recoil and pulse as she
eased the ring of muscle open.
Charlotte
knew that the nozzle would now slide in quite easily, but she was not to be
denied her first incursions inside the young boy. It was with a feeling of
absolute reverence that she slid two fingers up into his bottom. She turned her
hand, orientating it exactly, and at the same time, curling her fingers so that
the soft pads touched the prostate. He jerked his body and shivered as she
stroked firmly over the sensitive gland.
"Do
keep still Richard, I have to open you fully. Now keep quite still." She
slid her hand from in-between his cheeks and closed a third finger together
with the other two. She made them into the smallest diameter possible as she
introduced them to his sphincter. "Deep breaths now." She watched his
blushing face, seeing him look at her anxiously as she pressed firmly against
the tightening of the ring of muscle.
"Just
relax now. I know it must be embarrassing having to lie there with your legs
all stretched out while Miss Judith holds your little penis and testicles. But
this is all for your own good. So just keep looking at me while I pop another
finger into your bottom. Now hold tight, now." Charlotte thrilled at the
sudden deepening of the colour of his face. The thrill of his penetration was
accompanied by a sudden fierce stab of intense sexual sensation which coursed
through her body. She shivered in delight as she pushed her fingers steadily up
into his bottom. It was an irresistible sense of pure pleasure as she watched
him raise his head and gasp with the intense sensation.
Richard
looked at the two beautiful girls. He had not come to grips with the fact that
two schoolgirls, little older than himself could have such authority over his
naked body. He could not help his body squirming with each touch of their
fingers upon his body. He shuddered as Miss Charlotte's fingers seemed to
penetrate the very core of his being. He realised that she was very different
from Miss Judith. She seemed to understand everything about his body. The deft
entry of her fingers into his bottom had quickly made him cognizant of her
skill and dexterity. She seemed to know exactly where and how to touch him to
elicit the most agonising and
embarrassing responses from his body.
He
felt Miss Judith suddenly let go of his penis as Miss Charlotte prodded firmly
inside his bottom. He felt an immediate pulsing. It seemed to rush from his
bottom, right up through the shaft of his penis to the very tip. His penis
began to throb and Richard could hardly contain his emotion as his deeply
hidden erogenous zones were discovered immediately - and then, to his utter
humiliation, comprehensively aroused to a fever pitch. The shiver of deep
sexual sensation made him tense his body to a rigidity he had not thought
possible.
He
could see the nonchalant look upon the faces of the young schoolgirls as they
both looked enquiringly at his face. He blushed immediately as their knowing
looks told him they knew exactly what was happening to him and to his utmost
embarrassment, their indifference to his plight.
They
had quickly withdrawn their hands from his body at his sudden stab of arousal.
Richard breathed deeply, naively aware that he had been on the very precipice
of an emotional event that he had yet to experience.
His
eyes were closed as he tried to compose his emotions. Eventually his heavy
breathing subsided and he brought his body back under control.
Suddenly
he felt three hard slaps to his bottom. "Slap... Slap... Slap!" This
was quickly followed by an intense pressure through his sphincter and a feeling
of fullness deep inside him. His eyes flew open to see Miss Charlotte watching
him intently. He had not seen the nurse pass the nozzle to Miss Charlotte.
"Well
done Richard, just keep still while the water goes in."
Richard
gasped and blushed at the sudden sensation of the enema nozzle as it had
rapidly entered his bottom and the indignity of Miss Charlotte slapping his
bottom. He blushed deeply as she looked
at him.
"Oh
nurse would you like to do the honours? Will you squeeze in beside me."
The nurse joined Charlotte, holding the tubing high as she pressed against
Charlotte's body. It was Charlotte that spoke gently to him. "Nice deep
breaths now Richard. Come along, in and out, in and out." They both
watched the boy start breathing deeply. His body tensed for the intrusion which
must surely come. It was a nonchalant gesture on the part of Nurse Summers as
she turned on the tap.
They
all watched as the boy shivered and shook with the sensation of the water
rushing into his bottom. The nurse watched him suddenly quiver from head to
foot, his erect penis wobbling dramatically. She reduced the flow and moved
from between his legs.
Richard
closed his eyes as he manfully tried to deal with the sensation of the water
rushing into his bottom, only to open them in alarm as Miss Judith slapped a shaving brush, full of
lather against his pubis. Deftly she took hold of the tip of his penis as she
began to lather the whole area. He quaked with embarrassment.
"My,
little boys do seem to wriggle and jiggle when their penises are touched. I
hope you are not going to be difficult, are you Richard?" Judith could
tell that the boy was so embarrassed that he could hardly speak. It did not worry her that she was utterly
thrilled to see the boy so embarrassed as she thrust the shaving brush under
his bulging scrotum and gleefully watched him squirm.
The
boy's embarrassment continued through Charlotte's careful management of him. It
was she that shaved him, immediately after each area was lathered by Judith. It
was not long before the nurse had examined his bloated tummy and turned off the
water. He shivered and shook as they released him and carefully held him firmly
while the nozzle was abruptly extracted from his bottom.
"Hooo...
hooo."
His
gasps were ignored as wadding was packed between the cheeks of his bottom and
thrust up firmly as his legs were released.
"Come
along, I don't want any spillage between here and the stall."
Richard's
final ignominy was observed only by the nurse, who was surprised by the clarity
of the water he expelled.
"When
did you last go to the bathroom Richard?" The boy looked up at the nurse,
his face blushing as she glanced down at his nakedness. "Oh, erm... just
before I left for school, Nurse."
"Well
done, Richard, I like boys with nice clean bottoms. Now we are just going to
give you a quick wash, so the rest of you is nice and clean for the
doctor."
Hazel
walked out of the Deli holding two paper bags. Her long legs strode
purposefully towards her Subaru station-wagon. She was dressed, as was usual,
in a sand coloured outfit of thin cotton chinos that clung tantalisingly to her
athletic thighs. Her lightweight safari jacket flapped open as she walked,
revealing the tight cotton T-Shirt beneath. Her firm breasts, unaided by a bra,
jutted forward, the nipples becoming hardened in the cooler air, making two
firm protrusions in the thin, white material. Her natural ash-blonde hair swung
gracefully against her neck as she walked. Her body might have invited
salacious comment, had it not been for the gamine style of her clothes and her
determined stride. A second glance would have confirmed that this self-assured
and assertive girl was not to be trifled with.
Hazel
was a very independent and confident young woman. Her outfit befitted her
self-assurance right down to the soft suede desert boots that she wore. She
tossed her head as she opened the driver's door to the dark grey of the
interior leather. She glanced over her shoulder to check that her equipment was
still residing where she had left it.
She
took a bottle of water from one bag and a lettuce and tomato sandwich from the
other. She screwed up the bags and opened her window. She tossed the bags into
the garbage bin that was almost twenty paces away. Hardly looking as the paper
entered the bin.
There
was a notebook on the passenger seat which, she opened with her left hand,
dextrously scanning through the pages with her finger until she came to the
page she wanted. She noted an address and Zip Code before looking at the
detail. She loved the jobs she got from Patricia. They paid well and, truth be told, she would
have, if necessary, done them for nothing. Not that she was not a consummate
business woman.
She
had trained in measurement and analysis. The government-owned equipment, that
she had trained with, was very expensive and she knew that the cost was so
prohibitive that there were no other private operators. She had made a
down-payment on her own equipment two
years ago.
All
of a sudden at seventeen-years-old, she had become self-employed. The camera
and computer program had been over one hundred and eighty thousand dollars. She
knew that, although the market was specialised, the work was plentiful if you
gave accurate results. She had persuaded her father to lend her the deposit and
she had never looked back.
The
camera was certainly her pride and joy. Eight, five centimetre by five
centimetre sensors, electronically stitched together to form one image of
twenty centimetres high and ten centimetres wide. The fixed lens could be shot
landscape or portrait mode. The forty laser sensors were so accurate that she
could focus and measure anything that the beams could reach.
Today
she would invoice, six hundred dollars for operator fees and eighteen hundred
dollars for equipment hire. Plus travel, plus expenses. No wonder she had
already paid her father back, and would have the camera and equipment, paid for
by the end of the year.
She
felt a frisson of excitement run through her body as she thought of what
Patricia might have in store for her today. She looked at the Sat-Nav as she
turned on the engine, checking the address. Fourteen miles on back roads and
she would be at the Academy. She looked at her watch, should be half an hour
early. The location was certainly well out of the way, she thought as she drove
out of the parking lot and joined the turnpike for the next exit south.
Richard
was blushing as profusely as ever as Charlotte helped him into his baggy sport's
shorts. She looked towards the door as she heard a timid knock. The door opened
before she or the nurse could reach it. A young girl had walked through into
the changing room. She seemed startled at the sight of the examination table
and the room's obvious change of use.
"Oh,
erm... Nurse Summers, I didn't realise you were using the room. I just wanted
to get something from my bag. It is hanging from the hook over there." She
pointed to where Charlotte and Judith were standing on either side of Richard.
"I'm sorry to interrupt, Miss Charlotte and Miss Judith." She smiled
at the two prefects, ignoring the half naked boy completely.
Charlotte
recognized the girl as being from the second year but was not quite sure of her
name. She was certainly very noticeable. In fact Charlotte could remember often
watching her as she had walked with her friends along the cloisters. Her legs
were long and beautifully proportioned, and Charlotte had admired the way she
used her good looks to embarrass the boys, or have them do her bidding. She
would only be thirteen, but Charlotte knew that she was a very precocious and
sexy young girl. In fact, looking at her now, she could see that the girl
exuded sex in every look and gesture that she made. The nurse interjected. "Gillian
Sanders, isn't it? Did no-one tell you that this room was being used for the
medical examination preparations?"
"Sorry,
Nurse Summers, I knew that it was this morning, but lunch break has just
started and... well I presumed it was all finished. I saw most of the class
going to the canteen. I mean all the boys that were having their examinations,
so I erm... thought, well... that you had finished. I will come back. It is
just that the headmistress wants to see me at four o'clock and I thought I might
need my diary... erm... it's in my bag over there."
The
nurse smiled. "Alright Gillian, but if you had come any earlier, you would
have seen a naked boy laid on this couch. That could have been most
embarrassing for you. So in future, you had better not just presume
anything."
The
girl looked at Richard, just in time to see the boy blush to a deep shade of
red. What about me, he thought. Did the nurse not think that I would have been
embarrassed? He knew Gillian and the thought of a junior girl seeing him naked,
especially with his penis erect, made him shudder.
Richard
could not help blushing again as the girl looked at him. Her pretty face
smiling and showing her white teeth. She was smiling as she answered the nurse.
"Oh it wouldn't have bothered me nurse. I often see my brothers naked. It
doesn't bother me at all. Richard is really shy, so I know he certainly
wouldn't show his body on purpose. I bet he would have blushed like he is doing
now. The girls think he is such a blushy-boy, always hiding himself away."
Charlotte
had to smile as she looked at Richard, seeing him blush so deeply that even his
neck and chest became reddened. Charlotte gave an enquiring look to Nurse
Summers and Judith, and then looked meaningfully towards the young boy. The
nurse nodded imperceptibly before looking back towards Gillian.
Nurse
Summers looked at the girl and smiled. "Yes he does seem to blush quite
often. Now Gillian you can get your diary and then you can run an errand for
me, if you wouldn't mind." The girl quickly came to where Charlotte and
Judith were standing with Richard. She stood on her tiptoes letting her short
plaid skirt ride high over her firm thighs so that her panties were showing as
she reached into her satchel and retrieved her diary.
Judith
and Charlotte saw Richard look at her long legs before quickly dropping his
eyes to the floor. They could see that he was embarrassed by her display and
they both wondered whether the young girl had deliberately provoked him. In
actual fact, they both surmised that she had.
Richard
could not help looking at the pretty second-year girl when she turned to him,
now only inches away. He blushed again as she spoke. "Honestly Richard,
you would blush if a girl merely said 'Hello' to you, never mind if she were to
glance at your naked body."
Judith
and Charlotte giggled as the girl moved back to stand in front of the nurse.
She smiled sweetly as she looked up at the nurse. "What would you like me
to do, Nurse Summers, I am not having lunch, so I have an hour before class, if
that will be sufficient?"
The
nurse examined the young girl standing before her. The brevity of her skirt
showed that she had certainly usurped Academy Rules and bent them to her own
interpretation. However her pretty legs were certainly long and athletically
proportioned. Her beautiful thighs were much more lengthy than average, and her
trim body was enough to capture the imagination of the most modest of boys. It
was obvious that the girl was well aware of her superb looks, especially her
long limbs. It was also obvious that she enjoyed displaying them so
provocatively. What a precocious young minx, she thought. I bet she has all the
younger boys at her beck and call!
"Well
Gillian, as you are aware of this boy's sensitive nature, you can take young
Richard here to the Gymnasium annexe via the cloisters at the front of the
building. Then, if you would, have him sit and wait there while you go into the
gymnasium to see whether the Doctor is ready to see him. If the doctor is
ready, you may take the boy in and make sure that you hand him over personally.
I have a feeling that Richard is so shy that he might well run-away, otherwise.
As you said yourself, he is very shy."
Gillian
did not know why, but she felt that for some reason, they were hiding something
from the blushing boy. Her agile mind did not take long to think things
through. The use of the word 'doctor' twice. Of course, got it! The doctor is
female and they don't want him to know.
Gillian
looked at the nurse for a moment, tilting her cute face to one side. "Well
Nurse because he is so shy... and likely to run-away, will you instruct him to
hold my hand while I escort him to his examination?"
"What
a good idea, what do you think Charlotte and Judith? Shall I make him hold
Gillian's hand while she takes him to his examination appointment?"
Richard
looked absolutely mortified as Charlotte looked at him, her face betraying her
amusement. "Oh yes Nurse Summers, that would be an admirable
solution." She looked at Richard. "If you dare to disobey Gillian, I
will take those stupid, baggy shorts down and smack your bare bottom until you
cry. Do you understand me, Richard?"
Richard
looked at her, his bottom lips was trembling with shame. "I promise Miss
Charlotte, I will not runaway. I... I wouldn't even think of doing that."
"Well
then Gillian, take hold of his hand and do your bidding. You have my full
permission to pull down his shorts and smack his bare bottom if he is naughty
in any way."
Richard
blushed ever more deeply. In fact his face was such a picture of shame that
Gillian knew that he must be near to fainting with humiliation. She was
delighted with the scenario. Oh the poor boy. Well he will just have to grin
and bear it. The reality is, she thought wickedly, that he most certainly will
have to 'bare' it!
Gillian
moved forward and confidently took hold of his hand. Her dainty fingers wrapped
around his, holding him securely. She watched him blush at their contact.
Gillian had a great many questions in her mind as she led the boy to the
doorway of the changing room. Why not take him straight through the other door
which leads directly into the Gymnasium instead of having her walk him all the
way around the corridors.
She
got him through the door and then tightened her grip. "What were Miss
Judith and Miss Charlotte doing in there with you? Did they see you with your
shorts down? Did they see you bare?" Gillian could feel the tremble of his
body transmit through his hand as he blushed in humiliation. "Well... did
they see you without any clothes on?"
Richard
trembled in horror at her question. "You had better answer me
Richard." She looked at his face, almost halting their progress as she
spoke to him.
"I
can spank you if I want to. Miss Charlotte said so." She stopped him
completely and turned towards him until she was facing him. Their bodies were
now pressed together. Before he could speak or protest she had slipped her free
hand down the back of his shorts and smoothed her palm over his bare bottom
cheeks. She had held his hand down firmly so that it was an easy manoeuvre.
With her body pressed close to his she explored his bared flesh.
Richard
jolted with horror. "Oh please Gillian, oh please don't." She took
her hand out of his shorts, but kept the front of her body pressed to his. She
suddenly stood on tiptoe and kissed him softly on the lips. "There you are
Richard, you've been kissed by a girl. If you don't want me to put my hand down
the front of your shorts next time, you had better start answering my
questions." She moved her body away from his, but kept her eyes upon him.
She could see that he was under a huge cloud of embarrassment and shame as she
looked at his bright red face.
"Well
Richard, did the prefects see you with your pants down, I already know that you
are not wearing anything under these shorts?"
Richard
looked away and then spoke. "Yes."
"Yes
what, Richard?"
"Yes
Miss Charlotte and Miss Judith saw me without any clothes. I didn't want them
to, but they were helping the nurse."
Gillian
was intrigued and had really only just started her cross-examination of the
young boy. Her mind raced full-ahead. So... the best looking boy in the academy
is prepared by the nurse and two prefects. Why? What was the preparation and
why Richard? She moved back to his side and led him forward.
"What
was the preparation, Richard. You had better answer me. If you don't, I will
wait here until some of the girls walk past. I will tell them you have been a
naughty boy and that I need their help to take your shorts down... as I am now
in full authority over you and am allowed to spank you."
Richard
blushed. He had never felt so vulnerable or belittled by such a young girl. It
was as if she was the elder and he was the junior. She was definitely in charge
right now. He knew, that as it was now lunch hour, that there was an distinct
possibility of meeting some of the other girls.
The
words eventually came out in a rush. "Oh Gillian, they gave me an enema,
they put their fingers in my bottom. The nurse told them to do it. Then they
shaved me... erm down there."
Gillian
did not want to stop the flow, and she knew that now was the best time to
pursue it. "Did they touch your willy, did they make it go stiff? Tell me
now Richard, and I will stop asking you questions."
Richard
blushed mightily. "Yes Miss." Gillian thrilled. He had called her
Miss... and yes, they had touched his willy.
"Only
one more question, then I have finished." She looked at him as he tried to
avoid her gaze, but gave up when she stopped him in the middle of the corridor.
"Who made it go stiff?"
He
looked at her, his lips trembling. "They both did Miss. Miss Charlotte
held my.... oh... ah penis and testicles, while Miss Judith put her fingers...
erm, in my bottom. Then Miss Judith held my penis and my erm... testicles while
Miss Charlotte opened my bottom and put the nozzle in."
Gillian
watched a tear run down his cheek and knew that it had taken great effort for
the boy to admit the details of his humiliating preparation.
She
moved in front of him and held his hand down firmly. She pressed her body up
against his and tiptoed to kiss him on the lips. Before he could protest, she
slipped her free hand into the front of his shorts and grasped his penis firmly
in her hand.
"Don't
move." She whispered fiercely, as she felt his body immediately jolt in
shock. "Just stay there and don't you dare move." She moved her hand
down and cupped his scrotum, feeling the soft testes as they moved within the
tightened sac. Quickly she moved her inquisitive fingers back to his penis and
squeezed it firmly. "Alright Richard, one more squeeze and I will let you
go."
She closed her mouth over his and kissed him,
forcing her tongue between his lips. At the same time her delicate fingers
moved his foreskin down the shaft of his penis and squeezed. She could feel it
begin to throb against her fingers. She reluctantly let her fingers trail
upwards over his tummy as she retracted her hand from the waistband of his
shorts.
"Oh
how lovely, Richard; they've shaved you as smooth as an egg."
She
delighted in the sudden mighty blush to his face and chest. She placed her
fingers upon the back of his neck, pulling his head downwards as she kissed him
deeply.
"There
you are Richard, you are a nice boy and I will try and help you get over your
shyness."
Richard
was just trembling and blushing. He could not believe that Gillian had just
done that to him. He was speechless... absolutely beyond words.
She
squeezed his hand and pulled his other arm across her body so that she could
now grasp him with her other hand. She was now able to place her left hand upon
his bottom. She impudently slipped her fingers down the waistband of his shorts
until her palm was pressed against the bare checks of his bottom. "Now put
your free hand down around my waist and keep it there." She saw his face
blush as he moved his arm that was trapped against her hip, and placed it
tentatively around her waist; his face was blushing deeper and deeper as she
felt his hand gently rest above the soft swell of her hip. "Come along Richard,
you can hold me more firmly than that." She felt his hand press gently
against her, delighted that he was so embarrassed by being made to do it.
They
were now in the position of a courting couple, walking with their arms around
each other. Except that his left arm was awkwardly stretched across his body,
while her left hand was delving into the back of his shorts.
She
led him on, stroking her hand over his bare flesh as they walked. She looked to
her left, seeing his abject dismay and embarrassment.
"Come
along sweetie, this is much nicer don't you think."
Richard
was in such a dilemma. He could feel his penis begin to twitch, painfully aware
that the burgeoning flesh was becoming stiffer by the second. He had a terrible
feeling of guilt as well as embarrassment. He could not believe that he had his
arm around the waist of a girl. Not in triumph as a boy might feel with a girl
that had allowed his advances, but in meek acquiescence. Richard was painfully
aware that he was in complete subjugation to this pretty thirteen-year-old. He
felt the heat of his blushes burning his cheeks, while she nonchalantly
smoothed her hand over the tender flesh of his bare buttocks.
Gillian
was absolutely delighted with herself, exploring his bottom while they walked
like two young lovers. She matched his step so that they were in symmetry, as
she urged him forward with pats to his bottom. She made sure that she varied
every movement of her fingers. She carefully monitored the front of his shorts,
delighting in the obvious tenting as she continued her nonchalant but carefully
constructed stimulation.
As
they reached the annexe of the gymnasium, she turned him to face her.
"Hands upon your head now Richard, you know I have full authority over
you." She watched the wretched expression of shame grow upon his face as
he hesitantly put his hands upon his head, wondering what she would do next.
She pushed him backwards until the backs of his knees were against the bench.
"Now... I have to make sure that you don't run away like a naughty little
child."
She
watched his face crumple during her pre-planned and deliciously nefarious
action. She placed her hands to either side of his waist. "Keep your hands
upon your head and sit down." She waited until his body was half seated,
before she whisked his shorts down to his ankles.
He
could do nothing to prevent her. The weight of his body was already
half-seated. Cleverly her timing had prohibited him from doing anything to stop
her. His balance had already been beyond the point of his fulcrum. He looked at
her with incredulity as she pulled the baggy shorts from around his ankles. His
legs had been held up off the floor by her firm grip upon the shorts. Cleverly,
she had prevented him from standing up, until it was far too late.
She
was delighted with the sight of his penis, jutting straight upwards from
between his legs. She had but a moment to examine his nakedness, before his
hands flew downwards to cover his genitals. He was quite beautiful and his
penis was delightful. A little bigger than she thought it would be, but
absolutely exquisite. His eyes were wide open in utter astonishment at his
sudden exposure.
"I
will allow you to keep your hands where they are, Richard. But on no account
are you to play with your penis. I will spank you if you are still erect when I
return."
She
looked down at him, her delight at the naked perfection of his body made her
tingle all over. She had no idea why she had mentioned him playing with his
penis, but the deep blush of his humiliation thrilled her deeply.
"I
presume that you will still be here Richard, I don't suppose there are many
places where a naked boy can hide!"
She
observed the tears of shame that ran down his cheeks. She placed her hand under
his chin and raised his head to look into his eyes. "Be a good boy and sit
quietly, I will not be long. I hope you will think about something else other
than your stiff little Willy, otherwise it's 'over-my-knees' time."
Gillian
walked through the door of the gymnasium, leaving the trembling form of a
beautifully naked young boy, seated, in pure shame and embarrassment upon the
bench. She felt so triumphant and euphoric at her handling of the boy. He was a
full year older than her and nearly a foot taller... and yet, she had handled
him as easily as a toddler.
Yes,
she thought, what a thrill. The best looking boy ever! She had had him
completely under her control! She was delighted with herself. Handling the boy,
both physically and mentally, in such a manner as to leave him trembling and shaking
with embarrassment. She folded the shorts and tucked them under her arm, before
closing the door behind her.
She
knew that the boy was to have a physical exam, but was surprised to see; not
only the comprehensive amount of equipment, but also the expansive layout of
furniture that had been prepared in the gymnasium. She could see that in the
middle of the floor, was a large camera. This was set upon a wheeled-dolly and
tripod. Cables were running from it to a computer seated upon the top of a
table. To her right she saw the back of a beautifully tall and athletic girl,
who was dressed in a safari suit. She was bending over and adjusting the centre
of a large white backdrop that had been set against the right-hand wall of the
gymnasium.
Beyond
this area, three desks and been pushed together to form a long line finishing
at a modern technical-looking examination table. Seated behind the desks were
Miss Charlotte and Miss Judith. Next to them was a slender girl in a lab-coat
with a stethoscope around her neck.
Gillian immediately assumed that this was the doctor. She moved forward
confidently towards her Pastoral Tutor whom, she saw, was standing and talking
together with the Headmistress, Miss Hartman. With them was a very
young-looking girl dressed in nursing uniform.
Miss
Victoria Hartman, looked around as Gillian approached them. "Oh Gillian, I
thought you were bringing Richard Chambers for his examination." Gillian,
who was always very respectful of the headmistress, stood to attention in the
usual way. Standing with legs astride and hands placed behind her back. She had
easily managed to keep the boy's shorts tucked neatly under her arm, as she
looked up at her Headmistress. "Oh, Miss Hartman, I left him to wait
outside until I checked that the Doctor was ready for him. Shall I go and get
him?"
"Well
Gillian, that was a most sensible thought. Charlotte Browne was telling me that
he was so embarrassed that she thought he might run away."
"Oh
sorry Miss Hartman. Miss Charlotte warned me that he might, so I took his
erm... shorts. I didn't think he would run anywhere without any clothes on,
Miss."
"How
on earth, prey tell me, did you manage that?" Miss Hartman was smiling at
the thought, as was everyone else."
"I
tricked him Miss Hartman. I told him to put his hands upon his head and to sit
on the bench. As he was beginning to sit, I pulled them down ah... really
quickly. He couldn't stop me until it was too late."
"Most
enterprising of you Gillian. Now if you would go and give him them back so that
he can get dressed. If you would wait with him for five minutes and then bring
him to stand immediately in front of the desk where Doctor Robbins is seated. I
would rather he did not know of any of this."
The
headmistress waved her arm gracefully to encompass the preparation that had
been readied. The examination table, the scales and measuring pedestal, the
trolleys of smaller equipment with jars and tubes of differing properties and
the camera. She also indicated the personnel that were in attendance and seated
behind the desks. "Thank you, Gillian."
The
Doctor suddenly interjected. "Just a moment, Miss Hartman. Would you mind
asking this young girl to wait inside for a few moments."
Miss
Hartman looked puzzled but spoke quickly. "Gillian just wait beyond the
camera over there for a few moments, would you."
The
headmistress waited until the girl had reached halfway down the hall and was
out of earshot, before she turned to address Charlotte.
"As
we have reached agreement upon the daily treatment of Richard Chambers, I think
that Miss Webster would be the ideal person to inform him. Oh, there is one
other thing. Francis Chambers has asked me if she may have two assistants with
her when she... ah... treats Colin Zimmerman. So perhaps Charlotte, you would
like to do the same. I thought that one of the younger girls would perhaps be
apt to join you and Judith. It might prepare him for his treatment by Francis,
when he goes home for the break. What do you think?"
Charlotte
smiled at her headmistress. "Yes, I agree. It will certainly be easier
physically, and with Richard it might just help him to realise that the
ultimate authority over him will be 'any female' rather than just prefecture. I
doubt that he will ever become comfortable with his treatment; so it will
demonstrate the absolute and ultimate authority of any sanctioned female,
regardless of their age."
The
headmistress nodded in agreement as she turned her attention to Doctor Patricia
Robbins. "Oh Patricia, I am going to see Coach now. What time will you
require her attendance? I have made sure that she will be free for the rest of
the day."
Doctor
Robbins, looked across the Gymnasium floor to where the camera operator was
addressing her laptop. "Oh Hazel, how long do you need before you are ready?"
They
were all captivated by the tall athletic girl as she strode towards them. She
smiled at everyone as she stood in front of the line of desks. "Unless
anyone wants to take their clothes off for a test shot, I'm ready."
Her
infectious humour had them all smiling as she turned to face the headmistress.
"Sorry I was busy when you came in. I'm Hazel Furness, the camera
'op'." She held her hand out to the headmistress, who took it and returned
her smile of greeting. "Victoria Hartman." The headmistress addressed
everyone.
"I
have to go. So what time shall I ask the coach to attend?"
Doctor
Robbins answered her. "If you would ask her to come along in say... forty
minutes, that would be fine. Before you go Victoria... I asked that the girl
stayed, so that Hazel can get a test shot. Would you mind asking her to return
here as you go out. I'm sure Hazel will get her co-operation."
Victoria
smiled at her thoughts about Gillian. "Of course Patricia, I'm quite sure
Gillian will oblige." She laughed as she spoke again. "Just don't let
her have the file, she will be autographing copies for all the boys, if I know
Gillian!"
Victoria
turned to Miss Webster. "I have arranged for some refreshment for
everyone. If there is anything else, please see to it would you, Jean."
Hazel
watched as the headmistress stopped where the girl was standing and motioned
for her to return to the line of desks.
As
Miss Hartman exited the hall into the annexe, she saw the startled expression
of the naked young boy. His hands were lightly covering his penis as he sat on
the bench. She saw his eyes instantly glisten in shame as he looked up at her.
"Well
boy! Do you not stand up for your headmistress?"
Richard
did not know what to do or say. He suddenly jumped up, but kept his hands
pressed to his groin.
"Come
along Richard that is not the correct position - and you know it."
Her
voice became sharper. "Get in position NOW."
Richard
blanched with fright. He knew Miss Hartman was not to be trifled with. He
quickly stood up, straight with shoulders back, his legs astride, and promptly
placed his hands behind his back.
"Don't
let your state of undress make you forget your manners, Richard. You may stay
in that position until someone comes for you." She moved forward and to
his side. She bent gracefully from the waist, and spanked him three times upon
his bared buttocks.
"Slap...
slap... slap." She stepped back and looked at him. "Always show
courtesy... and always obey your superiors. If I hear anything to the contrary,
you will be visiting my study. Is that clear?"
Richard
suddenly became aware of the seriousness of his disrespect. Although she had
only smacked him three times, the slaps were hard and had left his bottom
stinging. "I am so sorry Miss Hartman, I apologise for my rudeness."
Miss
Hartman nodded her acceptance of his apology. "Stand still while I look at
you. She saw his face colour-up as she stepped back and began a slow appraisal
of his body. She moved to each side of him as she continued her examination.
Richard
could feel the blood rush to his face as he watched his Headmistress carefully
examine him. He could see her tilt her head as she spent quite a few moments
looking at his penis and testicles. He flinched as she reached forward and
placed her fingertips upon his right nipple, she scored the flesh with her
fingernail, several times, watching carefully as the flesh became erect.
Richard could feel a pulse of arousal between his legs as he felt her fingers
and smelled the heady perfume she was wearing.
"Turn
around, but adopt the same position facing the wall."
Victoria
waited until the boy had adopted the same position, but was now facing the wall
of the annexe.
She
moved forward and smoothed her hand over his buttocks, first one and then the
other, marvelling at the firm, but pliant flesh.
"You
keep yourself in good shape, Richard. I would like you to keep it up. A good
mind, deserves a good body."
Richard
was in a wretched state. He could feel his penis becoming plump and full. He
dare not look down, but really he did not have to, to know that he was becoming
embarrassingly erect.
"Right,
turn around to face me and adopt the same position. You know I will smack your
bottom if you disobey me."
Victoria,
knew that her gentle stroking of his buttocks as well as that of his nipples
would, by now, have produced the effect she desired.
Richard
was quaking. He did not know the exact extent of his erection, but was
shamefully aware that his penis had continued to engorge during the inspection
by his beautiful headmistress. He turned around, making sure that he adopted
the correct position to greet any member of the academy staff. He hardly dared
to look at her as he got into position.
"Good
boy Richard, now stand absolutely still. She looked down at his engorged flesh.
His penis stood straight out from his pubis, leaving his plump and swollen
testicles in open view. "Look straight ahead Richard." She made sure
the boy obeyed before she stood to his side and gently lifted his bulging
scrotum in her left hand. As I suspected Richard, you are maturing
prolifically. I am taking measures that will ensure you do not have your mind
on this..."
She
moved further to his front and took a firm grip of his penis, feeling his body
shudder in distress as she completed her sentence. "...rather than on your
work." She squeezed the shaft, feeling an immediate answering throb of
desire. She let go of him and stood back.
"It
is not your fault, Richard. It is a manifestation of a young boy growing up. It
is a mere physical reaction. And so Richard I am going to have it dealt with in
a physical way. It is a procedure that is necessary for your wellbeing, so that
you need not worry about becoming erect in the future and preoccupying your
thoughts about your condition. Having physical concerns - is to the detriment
of your work. And your work is your entire reason for being at this academy.
Don't
worry Richard, I have everything in hand. Now I would like you to, stay 'as you
are' - and 'where you are', until you are called for."
She
gently stroked his burning cheek and smiled at him. "Cheer up
Richard."
Abruptly
she turned and continued on her way through the annexe.
Richard's
anxiety totally obliterated any rational thought. He could not believe that the
headmistress had handled his private parts so casually. Or had dismissed his
erection as being a normal occurrence. She had left him nakedly and openly
displayed. What if someone walked past? What if his penis did not go down
before Gillian came to fetch him.?
Fortunately
for Richard, he had extra time to compose himself. There was more going on in
the gymnasium than Richard could possibly have realised.
Inside
the gymnasium, Gillian walked briskly back towards the desks. She was
intercepted by Hazel, who stopped her and took her arm. She walked her towards
the screen, as she spoke to her.
"I
need a test shot and the headmistress said you would help." The
thirteen-year-old looked up and smiled at Hazel.
"Whatever
you want. I don't mind missing a bit of class, with the Head's permission."
Hazel
placed her in front of the screen and held her shoulders at arm's-length as she
looked at her. "Do you know how tall you are?"
Gillian
looked up at her. "I am five-feet and three inches."
Hazel
smiled. "Well I will be able to tell you exactly, in a moment. Take your
clothes off. I mean everything. When you are done, I will position you. You
will have to hurry."
Gillian
looked into the girl's beautiful face. Her own face had reddened slightly, but
she was not going to make a fuss, however embarrassed she was feeling. She
turned and laid the boy's shorts out on the floor. She unbuttoned her cuffs and
quickly undid several of the buttons at the front of her white school shirt.
Hazel
watched in growing appreciation as the girl quickly stripped herself bare. Her
white high-cut panties were certainly very delicate for school-wear as was the
lacy white bra. She saw that the girl's skin was flawless as she stepped out of
her panties and reached behind her back to quickly unhook her bra.
She
noted that the girl had placed all of her clothes on top of the boy's shorts.
Ostensibly, she supposed, to stop them being touched by anything that might be
on the floor. As the girl stood up, barefoot and naked, she turned to Hazel.
"I'm
ready." Hazel smiled at her. "OK, I am going take a test shot. That
normally means about ten different positions, but I don't really need to spend
that amount of time. I am going to arrange you physically, rather than trying
to tell you what to do which, just doesn't work. I normally don't bother
explaining this to examinee's, but since you volunteered..."
Gillian
gave her a rueful smile at the volunteer remark and spoke quite cheerfully.
"It's 'hands-on' then, I guess."
Hazel
smiled at young girl and held her arm as she led her further away from the pile
of clothes. She took hold of her wrists and positioned her arms, so that her
hands were upon her head. She then placed both of her hands between
Gillian's thighs. Her fingers touched the
soft mound of her pubis as she pressed against the inner flesh and motioned
Gillian to part her legs.
"As
far astride as you can manage." Hazel did not seem satisfied until her
legs were widely splayed apart. "Right let me have a good look at you. You
have beautiful legs and really long thighs. Yes you will look perfect with a
little touch-up here and there."
Hazel
noted that the girl's slender body really accented the bare, plush mound of her
pubis. It was most unusually prominent, the plumpness of her labia was an
absolute delight. Hazel decided that she was enjoying herself tremendously.
Gillian
shivered as Hazel placed both hands on both of her breasts simultaneously.
Without further explanation, she proceeded to tweak both of her nipples until
the nubs of flesh were erect and standing out from breasts.
"Take
a deep breath, nothing personal!"
With
that statement, Hazel cupped her hand and squeezed the girl's pubis marvelling
at the lush mound of flesh. She moved her hand slowly through her legs and then
back again, her fingers deftly parting the lips of the young girl's labia as
her hand moved to and fro. She increased both the speed and the firmness of her
strokes as she looked into Gillian's face. She could see that the girl was
already aroused as the lips of her labia parted readily and, she noticed, had
already moistened her fingers.
"Normally
I have to smack my subject's bottom at this stage, so try and keep still."
Hazel knew that the girl would not be able to control her reaction, especially
with the amount of stimulation she was rapidly applying to her deliciously
plump vagina.
Hazel
ignored the girl's shivers as she took her hand away and examined in-between
her legs, before giving her nipples a final tweak and scoring her fingernails
over the hardened nubs of flesh. "There that's made you perk-up and
glisten nicely. Right hold it there and look at the camera lens."
Gillian
could not believe how nonchalantly and intimately she had been aroused.
Dutifully she looked into the lens as Hazel moved to the laptop.
Gillian
had a notion. What if, rather than being embarrassed, she decided to take the
opportunity to imagine herself to be a timid young boy who had been placed in
this position.
As
she began to fantasize, she felt a shiver of delight. The experience gave her a
valuable and unexpected insight into the shame that a boy would feel in this
position. It made her acutely aware, of just how easily a young boy would
become totally humiliated by his reluctant arousal. Especially by Hazel's
nonchalant, but expert stimulation.
The
experience of standing naked while being made to acquiesce to deliberate
stimulation and arousal by the prettiest of the staff and girls at the academy,
would be especially shaming for young boys. She was thrilled by the fact, that
a boy's outward manifestation of arousal is impossible to hide, and responds
almost immediately to any stimulation. Yes, for a boy, it would be a pure and
unadulterated exquisite humiliation. And being spanked into position, by a
young girl, would be absolute anguish!
God! How I would just love to be
here when Richard is photographed. Please, please, My Lucky Star, make it
happen!
Gillian
stood quite still, even though her legs were widely stretched apart, she
maintained her exact position. Her eyes obediently looking into the lens, while
Hazel viewed the monitor. Hazel held her body bent low in concentration as she
swept the mouse across the pad.
It
was quite a few moments before she seemed satisfied. "OK Gillian, relax.
In fact, come and have a look." Gillian felt even more naked walking
across towards the camera. She was suddenly aware of the interested audience,
standing to her right. Rather than blush, she thrilled as she realised that
everyone had watched the entire procedure. Her thoughts turned to her all
consuming and prurient interest; Richard! How would he feel, how could he
possibly bear the humiliation of all this female attention, while he was
completely and utterly, stark naked?
"Here
you are, see the stats at the side of the picture!" Hazel pulled Gillian
closer to her, as she explained. "The subject doesn't need to stand
straight for the camera to take measurements. The laser measures every
parameter and the program works it all out. You are
one-point-six-one-nine-two-five metres tall. In other words you've grown three
quarters of an inch. You will probably grow to be around five-eight, maybe
five-nine with lovely long legs. Would that suit you? I'm five-eight, by the
way."
Hazel
had put her arm around Gillian's waist as she had come to look at the large-screen
laptop.
Gillian
felt a shiver run through her body as now Hazel stroked her hand down over her
bottom. She looked at the large image of her body upon the screen. The picture
was so detailed that she could actually see each bead of moisture on the lips
of her labia. She leaned her naked body against Hazel as she whispered in her
ear. "My God, it's almost pornographic! Look what you have done to
me."
Hazel
smiled as she continued casually stroking her hands over the girl's firm
buttocks. "I will just show you how detailed it can be." She zoomed
in to show Gillian's left nipple. Every minute detail of the erectile nub of
flesh was shown. It seemed to jump out
of the screen. Hazel made quick swoops and clicks with the mouse. "There
you are. Your nipple is standing out exactly one centimetre. Pretty impressive
for a girl your age, what are you, thirteen, just?"
Gillian
nodded, absolutely absorbed by the picture of her body. "Don't suppose you
do ordinary poses?" She whispered softly. Hazel smiled, "Go and get
dressed, the camera is fine. Fetch the boy in and then come back at four. I
think you might qualify for a few frames as I think the doctor would probably
like to see your measurements."
Gillian
was just about to go and get dressed, when Miss Charlotte called out to her.
"Come here for a moment will you, Gillian."
Gillian
immediately altered her direction and went to stand in front of Miss
Charlotte's and Miss Judith's desk. The position she adopted was quite normal
when standing in front of a teacher - but entirely provocative when naked. She did not try to cover herself, but rather,
she held the sexually strident pose; standing with her legs astride and her
hands clasped behind her back. Her full breasts were naturally pushed forward
and she was acutely aware that her nipples were still fully erect. She was
delighted with the thought, that the plump peach-slices of her vagina were
moist and glistening with arousal.
Charlotte
had to stifle a giggle at the confident display. "I am impressed with the
way you have handled Richard Chambers, Gillian. Now listen carefully to what I
have to say. You have shown good initiative, so I am going to induct you into
my team." She noted the young girl's avid interest as she continued.
"From
seven a.m. tomorrow morning, until the day he leaves this academy, Richard
Chambers will be made to ejaculate. The term that has been employed is
'Milked'. It has been brought to the attention of the headmistress, that boys
are becoming distracted from their work by sexual urges. She has taken advice
from Doctor Robbins and has instigated this regime. Doctor Robbins has also
confirmed the view of the headmistress, that masturbation by young boys, is
harmful."
She
watched the young girl's sudden full comprehension of what would be happening,
and the ensuing shiver of excitement that ran through her delicious naked body.
"To
use the word precisely, Self-Masturbation, can, over time, cause the penis to
mal-form and initiate other problems, such as tissue damage and disease. Therefore,
boys that have reached puberty will be milked, at least once a day. The
headmistress has also suggested that having a younger girl help with the
milking procedure, will instil respect for the authority of females of all
ages, when they have been put in charge of his welfare. Miss Judith and I will
instruct you in the methodology and practice of extracting a maximum emission
of semen from a young boy. I shall also give you study-texts upon the male
anatomy so that you will become proficient. If you wish to take this on and
become one of the team, I will need your verbal agreement.
Do
you agree to take this on. Do you agree to study and become proficient?"
Gillian's
silent prayer had been answered. She wanted to jump up and punch the air.
Although, her better judgement showed through. "Agreed, Miss Charlotte,
Miss Judith, thank you for your trust in me.
Gillian
could not control her shiver of delight, nor could Charlotte stop her attention
focussing on the plump pudenda of the young girl. "You may stay for the
examination, so that you will be able to see first hand, the techniques we will
be using upon Richard. Oh, and you do not need to see the Headmistress at four,
pm."
"Shall
I go to the annexe and fetch Richard now Miss?"
Judith
smiled and answered her. "Yes Gillian, but not in that outfit!"
Miss
Webster and the young nurse had stood admiring the exquisite body of the young
girl as Charlotte had addressed her.
Joan
Neville took a tissue from her equipment trolley and handed it to Gillian. The
girl giggled as she wiped deeply between her labial lips. The nurse took the
tissue back, obviously amused at lack of inhibition in the thirteen-year-old.
Gillian
skipped off to hurriedly don her school uniform. She dressed quickly but still
ensured that she was impeccably turned-out. Deliberately, she folded the wide
waist-band of her skirt over, knowing that the hemline would now be so short,
that it would finish just below the juncture of her thighs. She often thought
of this as her jail-bait-look. She glanced guiltily at Hazel who had watched
her do it. Hazel grinned, showing her beautifully white teeth. Gillian gave her
a look of mock innocence as she walked towards the doors at the end of the
hall. Suddenly she dashed back and picked up the boy's shorts, grinning
cheekily at Hazel, as she passed by her again.
She
almost rushed to the door and then walked silently for the last few paces. She
was hoping to catch Richard unawares. She opened the door abruptly and was
surprised to see that the boy was standing with his legs astride and with his
hands behind his back. Gillian was most adept at thinking quickly and she
surmised, quite correctly, that he had been ordered to stay in that position.
Why else?
Probably,
the Headmistress, she thought. She could see that he was about to move to cover
himself.
"Stay
as you are Richard, that is an order." She now felt fully empowered to do
what she liked. After all she was now in authority, or certainly would be at
seven a.m. tomorrow morning.
She
saw him glance at her legs. She could see the furtive movement of his eyes and
knew that he was being drawn to them like a magnet.
One
thing she knew instinctively, was that she did not want him to be erect before
the delicious Hazel got her hands upon him. Or perhaps the doctor would be
first to handle his body. She looked down at his plump testes and sumptuous
penis.
Will I really get to handle those
and watch his face while he ejaculates? You bet I will!
"OK
Richard. I don't want you to be embarrassed. So I will turn my back, while you
put these on. Hurry up now, the doctor is waiting for you. Here take
these."
She
handed him the shorts, waiting while he took his hands from his head. She moved
forward, passing him, and stood in the entrance of the annexe. Her position was
deliberate, so that she blocked off his escape route, should he choose to flee.
She gazed out at the cloisters, hearing him hastily shuffling about as he
donned his voluminous shorts.
"Are
you dressed now?"
"Ah...
yes Gillian."
She
turned towards him and spoke sternly. "Turn around and lean forward
Richard. Place your hands flat against the wall. Come along now, you are
wasting time."
Richard
looked completely puzzled as he hesitantly obeyed her. He leaned forward, with
his knees against the bench and placed the palms of his hands high up on the
wall to brace himself.
He
almost yelped in surprise as she pulled his shorts down to his knees in one
swift movement. He was utterly shocked, but before he could protest she had
encircled his waist with her left arm and had proceeded to spank his bottom
with her right hand.
"Slap...
slap... slap... slap... slap... slap... "
"What
did you call me, Richard?"
"Slap...
slap... slap... slap... slap... slap..."
She
continued to slap the cheeks of his bottom as she spoke. She was thrilled by
each and every smack she delivered. His buttocks bounced excitingly against the
palm of her hand. Oh Bliss, what absolute
bliss!
"Answer
me boy, what did you just call me?"
"Slap...
slap... slap... slap... slap... slap... slap..."
Richard
was so embarrassed. He could not believe that he was being soundly spanked by a
thirteen-year-old girl. His mind was in turmoil, he shivered and shook in shame
and anguish.
How
could it be? This surely was a travesty! That he was being spanked by Gillian.
A thirteen-year-old junior girl, who was in the same class as his little sister.
Richard,
suddenly came to a realisation, as the sound spanks to his bottom continued
without the slightest hesitation. He could not believe that the sting and
smarting of his bottom could grow to such an intensity... and there seemed to
be no end in sight.
The
young girl's chastisement of his bottom cheeks, with her quick, repetitive
slaps, seemed to be incessant. She had asked him a question and he suddenly
realised that she was not going to stop until she had an answer. Finally he
broke, his voice sobbing and quavering, punctuated only by the staccato sound
of her spanks to his bottom.
"Slap...
slap... slap... slap... slap... slap... slap...
"Oh...
I am sorry Miss. I mean Miss Gillian. Please Miss Gillian no more please."
Her
voice was interspaced with even harder spanks as she spelled it out to him.
"M...
slap... I... slap... S... slap... S... slap, slap, slap, slap."
Gillian
stopped abruptly. She was not quite sure how she would explain his reddened
buttocks, but it did seem that her standing was good within the gymnasium.
"That's
better Richard. Now, promise me, boy. Promise me that you will obey me without
hesitation and with proper respect."
She
waited for his reply.
His
voice was full of emotion as he addressed her. "Please Miss Gillian I am
very sorry. I promise I will obey you... and show you proper respect. I am very
sorry Miss Gillian."
Gillian
was delighted. She had him exactly where she wanted him... at least for the
time being.
She
pulled his shorts up before he could do it himself. How embarrassing for him,
she thought. Having a young girl dress him!
"Now
take my hand and come with me. My word, you are a naughty boy... and I really thought
you liked me after I kissed you in the corridor."
She
saw the extent of his blushes and the tears on his cheeks, as she turned him
around to face her. She held his hand tightly as she touched the handle of the
door to the gymnasium. She knew that he might balk at the sight that would
greet him. She could see that his body was visibly trembling from the
embarrassment of being spanked by a young second-form girl.
"Didn't
you like me kissing you Richard? I am so upset, I really thought you liked
me."
Richard
was so embarrassed he could hardly speak. Her kiss was the first kiss he had
ever had from a girl. Of course he had been completely enthralled by it. But
his embarrassment was such that he had not dared to say so.
"Well
Richard, don't you like me?"
Richard
blushed again. There was no space left anywhere that was not already suffused
in redness. The blush, instead, merely became deeper. He spoke softly, almost
in a whisper of awe. "Oh Miss Gillian it was erm... beautiful... erm
Miss... it was lovely. Is it alright to say that Miss?
Gillian
was euphoric. A conquest yes, she had had plenty of those from junior boys. But
now the beautiful Richard Chambers, the Holy Grail of boys..., had fallen under her spell. Of course he
would suffer for it. But it would be such a joy for her to be able to play with
him as she wished.
She
quickly wiped the tears from his cheeks with her hand and then quickly kissed
him on the lips. She could see the profound effect her kisses had upon him.
Such a timid boy, she thought.
She
opened the door and quickly pulled him though. She squeezed his hand tightly,
as she almost rushed him up through the hall of the gymnasium. She could see
him wildly looking left and right as she moved him quickly past the large
camera and onward until they were finally both stood in front of the doctor's
desk.
The
nurse and Miss Webster were stood to one side of the desks and both were
looking at her in quiet amusement as she hustled the boy to the spot that had
been allocated.
Gillian
spoke presumptuously in front of the doctor as she instructed him.
"Hands
behind your back, feet astride, come along Richard, you are standing in front
of the doctor."
Richard
obeyed. He would have naturally adopted that position anyway. But to be told to
do it in front of the doctor and Miss Webster, by a young girl, made him shiver
with shame. He saw, to his horror, that Miss Charlotte and Miss Judith were in
attendance and seated at the next desk to the doctor . He was absolutely
mortified that Miss Webster, his beautiful pastoral tutor was there also. He
just hoped and preyed that Miss Gillian would be leaving before they started.
He
had not noticed the nurse who was seated near the weighing-scales. She was sat
primly with her hands upon her lap as she watched the proceedings. There was
trolley standing to the side of her which, held a variety of instruments, as
well as gauges, gauzes and unguents.
Doctor
Robbins leaned forward and looked at the forms on the desk in front of her.
"Right your name is Richard Chambers. How old are you Richard?'
Richard
looked at the doctor who had got his full attention.
"Fourteen
years and three months, ah... Doctor."
"...And
how tall are you?"
"Five
feet and ten inches, Doctor."
"Well
the nurse will be examining you first, so if you would go over there and stand
in front of her please. Stand up straight and put your hands upon your head.
Right off you go." She looked at Miss Webster meaningfully as she turned
her head towards Gillian. Her voice was softly spoken so that the boy would not
hear her.
"Pop
over there and see Hazel. She has said that you may help her this
afternoon."
Gillian
could not help grinning as she skipped over to see Hazel.
Richard
walked over towards the nurse, he was aware that Miss Webster was not far
behind him. He came to stand in front of the young nurse, acutely aware that
she did not look old enough to be nursing, in fact she reminded him more of
Gillian. She looked up at him and gave him a professional smile.
"OK
young man. Yes, that is the position I want. Now stay still, while I ask you
some questions." She paused and looked across at Miss Webster, who
immediately stood beside Richard and placed her hand on top of his, that he had
obediently placed on top of his head.
Richard,
looked at her attentively. Gillian had taught him a lesson, even if he would
have not like to admit it. The young nurse smiled reassuringly at him and said.
"Just listen to me and do what I say and I am sure we will get along fine.
Miss Webster is here to help you as your pastoral tutor. So she as asked that
you pay her no attention, during your examination.
Richard
glanced at Miss Webster and then returned his attention to the nurse.
"Now, it's Richard, isn't it.?" Richard replied with a prompt,
"Yes Nurse"
"Tell
me Richard, do you know how to do the exercise Jumping-Jacks and running on the
spot? One of the boy's told me that you do them to warm up, before you do your
sports"
"Yes
nurse we all do something to warm-up."
"Good
boy, now just look up to that beam in the ceiling." Richard, looked upward
and immediately felt the nurses slender fingers slip inside the waistband of
his shorts. Without having time to look down from the beam, he felt his shorts
being lowered quickly, until they were around his ankles.
"Just
lift your foot." The Nurse had already got her hands around his right
ankle as she spoke. Richard had involuntarily started to remove his hands from
his head, only to feel Miss Webster tighten her grip around his fingers.
"Good boy and now the other one please."
Richard
wanted to look around to see if anyone had witnessed his ignominious stripping.
He could not move with Miss Webster's tight grip upon his hands.
The
nurse's voice was bright and cheerful as she placed his shorts beneath the
shelf of the trolley which, had been placed next to her.
"Good
boy, Richard. Now I want you to start your Jumping-Jacks until I tell you to
stop. I need a very elevated heartbeat, so you are required to jump as high as
you can. Have you got that?"
Before
he could possibly have had time to reply, Miss Webster had released his hands
and had smartly spanked his bottom three times.
"Slap...
slap... slap..."
"Come
along Richard. I want you to obey the nurse straight away."
Richard
could not believe that Miss Webster had spanked him. She was always so nice to
him, she had never spanked him or even raised her voice. Richard was stupefied.
He wanted to explain himself, but again his experience with Gillian made him
begin the exercise.
He
felt absolutely stupid and gauche as he began to jump up and down, his legs
parting and his arms stretching outward and upward, as he completed the first
Jumping-Jack.
His
mind was in a turmoil of embarrassment as he began to take in the fact that he
was stark naked. That he was being made to do the most embarrassing of
exercises in front of the pretty nurse and his beautiful pastoral tutor.
The
Nurse spoke to him once more. "Higher please, much higher Richard, I need
you to be completely out of breath. Come along now. I don't want Miss Webster
to have to smack your little bottom again."
Richard
was already incandescent with shame and humiliation. He could feel his penis
begin to slap against his thighs, sometimes alternately, as his feet left the
floor - and then slap loudly against his stomach as he descended. He could not
ignore the vision of the pretty young nurse, seated so demurely in front of
him. She did not seem the least bit perturbed by his nakedness, or the sight of
his penis slapping wildly against his body.
Her
eyes seemed to alternate between looking at his face and then looking at his
genitals. Richard was the last person in the hall to realise what the outcome
of his exercise would be. But it did dawn on him eventually. Even though his
mind had given him no clue, all of a sudden, his body did.
He
felt a growing sensation in his penis. He had given it no thought until then,
perhaps blighted by the utter embarrassment of what he was being made to do.
Now, he suddenly realised that he was reluctantly becoming aroused by the
constant slapping of his penis against his body. He was about to stop the
exercise, perhaps to explain his predicament, he did not know why.
It
was if Miss Webster had read his thoughts, that he felt three more sharp smacks
to his buttocks. "Come along boy, what on earth is wrong with you. Now put
some energy in to it, or I will have to take you over my knees in front of the
nurse of all things." She slapped him again. "Now come along."
In
a thick and misty shroud of shame, he began to jump higher... at last doing the
exercise as he would normally perform it. He knew. The embarrassment and shame
had clouded his mind. But he knew. They had expected it, they did not care that
his penis was becoming erect. His shame and his feelings would not preclude them
from making him do exactly what they wanted. He could feel his penis
stiffening, it was waving about in the air, still meeting his thighs and his
stomach, but with a rigid thud, rather than the slapping that he had first been
aware of.
He
could not help looking at the nurse. She did not seem to have changed her
expression. She merely glanced at her watch, before continuing to watch his
naked body. She looked up to his face for a few moments, before looking back
down at his naked body as he bounced up and down upon the sprung floor of the
gymnasium.
Suddenly
she raised her hand and stood up before she spoke to him. "That will
do." She waited until he came to a stop. "Give me your wrist, quickly
now."
The
pretty young nurse took his wrist and held it outwards. "Hold it there,
Richard."
Richard
was about to cover his penis, but as he looked down he felt Miss Webster take
hold of his other wrist and pull it to his side. "Keep your hand by your
side, Richard." He looked at his penis in shame. It was almost fully erect
and was standing straight from between his thighs. He fought the impulse not to
look at Miss Webster, but his shame was such that he just had to see whether
she was looking at him. Whether she had seen his erect penis. He looked.
Her
expression of amusement, and her words of condolence just shamed him to the
core. "Now Richard, you are just a young boy, and young boys get
erections. It is a normal physical response."
Richard
blushed so mightily he felt faint. Miss Webster let go of his hand while the
nurse turned him around so that he was facing towards the desks. They led him
forward. He looked down in shame; his face was burning with embarrassment. It
was a fact that he was totally petrified with the acute awareness of his
nakedness; his penis was so hard and erect, that it was waving from side to
side as he walked.
It
seemed to Richard, that everyone would think that he was exhibiting himself
deliberately. He dare not look up, and so his field of vision was confined to
the object of his shame. He watched his penis as it stood out from his body,
the shaft was waving from left to right as he moved. He could see that his
foreskin was drawn back, baring the tip which, seemed to amplify the sway of
his engorged flesh. He trembled as he felt a sudden throb. It seemed to come
out of nowhere. To his horror, he could actually see the head of his penis move
up and down of it's own volition. He saw the desks appear in his view and was
terrifyingly aware that they had come to a halt in front of the doctor's desk.
However
hard he fought with his emotions he could not control the shiver of utter
anguish that encompassed his body as he looked up. He immediately saw Miss
Charlotte and Miss Judith. Both of the girls were looking directly at his erect
penis. They had smirks of derision upon their pretty faces as they raised their
heads. Slowly and deliberately, as if synchronised, they looked directly into
his eyes.
Richard
felt his lips begin to quiver and tears of shame fill his eyes.
The
Doctor came around from her desk and wasted no time in applying her stethoscope
to his heaving chest.
"Chin
up, Richard and keep still." The doctor proceeded to move the stethoscope
across his chest. "What was his pulse, nurse?' Nurse Neville addressed the
doctor. "It was ninety-two on completion of the exercise." The doctor
looked across to Charlotte and was about to repeat the result. However, she
smiled as she saw that Charlotte was already filling in the results.
The
doctor moved behind the naked boy and placed the stethoscope on his back.
Richard shivered as her gentle hands smoothed over his skin. Her left hand
moved around his waist and upwards, until her delicate fingers were able to toy
with flesh of his nipples.
Charlotte
and Judith were joined by the school nurse who pulled up a chair to sit next to
Charlotte. They all looked at the boy as the doctor listened to his lungs. It
seemed to Miss Webster, as she looked at everyone, that they were all delighted
by the physical perfection of the boy's face and body. His skin was smooth and
entirely clear of any imperfection.
It
was without exception, that they all thrilled in examining every inch of the
naked fourteen-year-old boy. With helpless obedience, he stood, legs astride
with his penis jutting forward. Charlotte had noted that the doctor had deftly
erected the flesh of both his nipples.
"Heart
rhythm. Sinus arrhythmia for function" She called out as she let her
stethoscope hang down between her breasts.
The school nurse looked down at Charlotte's neat hand writing and
confident spelling. She slipped her hand around her waist and squeezed her with
appreciation. Charlotte added to her notation, having already noted erectile
flesh of areola and nipple and her first notation of penile engorgement. She
looked up at the doctor and spoke.
"Doctor, shall I include normal observations as well as
your instructions?" The doctor walked over to Charlotte and turned the
forms around and looked at her notations written neatly under 'General
Observation'. Doctor Robbins smiled at her. "Yes Charlotte, absolutely
perfect. Perhaps you can also look at the psychological observations too. If
you need any medical terms, just ask me. Excellent notes, Charlotte, and thank
you, Nurse Summers for your excellent arrangements."
The doctor turned to Richard. "Right, I want you running on
the spot. You are obviously very fit, but I must get your heartbeat up to over
a hundred. So forget your obvious embarrassment and give me five minutes of
strenuous exercise. Off you go."
Richard's heart sank at the doctor's instruction. Her natural
authority had completely expunged any wilful disobedience. In fact he had
realised the futility of any resistance to his beautiful and determined
tormentors. He began to run on the spot. He forced his knees as high as he
could. Blindly, he performed the exercise as he would do in normal
circumstances. He was exerting himself exactly as per the Doctor's instruction.
Hazel leaned towards Gillian as the boy began running on the
spot. "Can you see alright?"
Gillian could not hide her excitement as she watched the naked
boy. He was absolutely perfect. She thought that it was such and exquisite
thrill to watch him exercise while naked. What must it have been like in
ancient Greece, watching the athletes performing totally naked. She could feel
her stiffened nipples rub sensuously against the front of her shirt.
How nice to be free of her bra. It was while the boy had been in
front of the nurse, being stripped of his shorts, that Hazel had whispered to
Gillian. "Take your bra off... you can put it in one of the drawers of the
desk. Here let me help you." Hazel had lifted her shirt at the back and
slipped her hand upwards, undoing the hook in a swift movement. "Just slip
it down your front. No one will notice." They were like a couple of
naughty schoolgirls as they hid the bra in the drawer of Hazel's desk.
Hazel had moved Gillian closer to the doctor's desk as Richard
started his second exercise. Everyone watched as the boy continued with his
exercise for a good five minutes before the doctor brought it to a halt.
She had him place his hands upon his head as she listened to his
heart. After a few moments she timed his pulse and called to Charlotte.
"Pulse from one-ten down to eighty in twelve seconds. Sinus arrhythmia." She
listened for a while longer as the nurse brought her rolling stool over to her.
Gillian could see that the boy was blushing from head to foot as
the doctor sat upon the stool and placed her hand under his scrotum. "Legs
wide apart please, Richard." The boy shivered and blushed as he obediently
spread his legs wide apart - and, at the same time, felt the cool hand of the
doctor, grasp his testes in her slender fingers.
"Turn your head to the left Richard." He blushed as he
turned his head towards Miss Webster and the pretty young nurse. "Cough
please... come along now, I want a nice big cough." Richard shuddered as
he felt the doctor gently stroke her hand between his legs as she gave the
instruction. Her fingers seemed so gentle and so very arousing as they felt
around between his legs.
It was without warning that the doctor let go of his testes and
suddenly grasped his erect penis with both hands. He shuddered and shook with
sensation, as his foreskin was efficiently retracted until the skin was
stretched tight. He could feel his penis throb against her fingers as she
deftly held the skin back and ran her fingertips over the urethral opening.
Richard shook violently.
The doctor seemed to ignore Richard's fevered gyrations as she
examined his penis, nonchalantly applying stimulus to the rigid flesh. Miss
Webster could not help herself as she slapped the young boy's buttocks. The
thrill of spanking him, although she knew that he could not help his reaction
to the doctor's ministrations, was just too hard to resist. She spanked his
bottom again, revelling in the absolute thrill it gave her.
The doctor's voice was quite matter-of-fact as she spoke to
Charlotte. Her long, slender fingers were examining the boy's genitals with
casual indifference to his feelings. "Penis tissue is now fully erectile
and shows no abnormalities. Prepuce is mobile and exhibits moderate
circumcision, probably performed in infancy."
The doctor looked over her shoulder to see Hazel standing behind
Gillian. "Oh Hazel, I think you had better do preliminary genitalia
measurements now, as we will have to perform the first extractions fairly soon.
Otherwise I fear we may lose our chance of a properly controlled and fully
prostatic instigated emission."
Hazel knew exactly what the doctor meant. In fact everyone was
aware that the boy was not far from ejaculating involuntarily.
Hazel moved forward in front of Gillian and took the boy's wrist
in a firm grip. Her instructions were equally firm and had Richard blushing
profusely. "Keep your hand away from your penis and come with me."
She led him to the backdrop and gestured that Gillian should follow her.
Gillian looked into the boys embarrassed face as Hazel stood him facing towards
her. She realised that he had been positioned so that the camera could capture
a side view. Hazel had him place his hands upon his head with his fingers
interlaced.
She moved towards Gillian and whispered in her ear. "Get
his nipples nicely erect... just the same way I did to you. Then, when I get to
the computer, give his penis one or two very light strokes. Just with your
fingertips. Got it?"
Hazel turned back to the boy. "I have asked Gillian to
touch you in certain places. You will stay as you are and not move. If you do,
I shall spank you... and I do mean a very sound spanking, so you have been
warned."
Gillian interrupted her. "He is to call me Miss
Gillian." Hazel hid her amusement as she looked into the boy's blushing
face. "You will, of course, always have proper respect for Miss Gillian,
won't you Richard?"
Richard could hardly speak, but managed a quiet. "Yes
Miss."
Gillian watched Hazel walk away to her camera and computer. She
looked into the boy's blushing face and spoke to him. "I think you are
well aware what will happen to you, should you disobey me."
She moved forward and looked directly into his eyes. "I
have been ordered to touch you in certain places, so don't try and evade me. Do
you promise? Or shall I go ahead and spank your bottom until it is red all
over. Just like I spank any of the naughty little boys that I babysit. "
She could see that the boy was in an absolute anguished state of
embarrassment as he answered her with a softly-spoken, "Yes". The
sound emanated from between his trembling lips.
Gillian was in rapture as she raised her right hand and caressed
his left nipple with the back of her fingers. She followed suit with her other
hand and looked into the boy's face as she felt the two nubs of flesh begin to
harden. After several gentle strokes, she let her fingernails score over the
erected flesh until she could see that his nipples were now both fully erect.
Gillian was aware that the boy had glanced downward, once or
twice, as she had played with his nipples. She suddenly realised that her own
nipples were pushing against the front of her shirt. She looked down quickly,
noting that the darker flesh was clearly visible through the material.
So that what has had his attention, she thought. "Well
Richard, I hope you are not having disrespectful thoughts... are you. I have to
touch you now, so make sure you keep still. I am sure you are aware that Miss
Hazel will smack your pretty bottom if you disobey."
Gillian looked down at his erect penis. She was aware that she
had hardly any room for error. His penis was pointing upward towards her. The
foreskin had retracted and the corona was fully visible. Carefully she reached
beneath the flesh and scored her fingernails against the underside of the erect
penis. He jerked his hips involuntarily, but she could see that he was fighting
the impetus to draw his body away from her touch. She repeated the movement,
her nails starting from the scrotum and combing the underside of his penis.
This time she allowed her fingers to brush over the exposed head.
"Ahh... ooooh." He shivered, a fine quiver of emotion
running through his body as she repeated the motion of her hand. She saw that
his penis had begun to throb. She turned to Hazel and was surprised to see that
the doctor and Miss Webster had joined Hazel at the computer desk.
"Will that be alright Miss Hazel?" Hazel smiled and
gestured for Gillian to move backwards.
"Yes that's fine just stay there for a second or two
Gillian and then I will come and reposition him."
Miss Webster was absorbed by the image on the monitor screen. A
perfect picture of a perfect face and body.
His penis fully
erect, his testicles bulging in their tight scrotal sac, drawn up tightly with
his reluctant arousal. Delicious!
Hazel walked over to him and turned him to face the camera.
Gillian saw him blush with shame as she saw Miss Webster and the doctor
watching him. Suddenly Hazel smacked the cheeks of his bottom. "I want
your feet wide apart, come along now." Gillian could see his lips
trembling as Hazel manoeuvred him until his legs were at full stretch. She
moved towards Gillian and whispered in her ear.
"He is too sensitive for you to touch his penis. Just
stroke his bottom a few times and perhaps his nipples again. But he is right on
the edge of ejaculating."
Gillian nodded and moved towards the boy as Hazel returned to the camera. Gillian was pretty sure that
Richard's emotions were fully stretched. She stood to his side and whispered to
him.
"Just be a good boy and keep still sweetie, It will all be
over soon."
She stroked her hand gently over his buttocks. She could feel
his body shiver from her gentle touch. Gillian saw that his penis had not
really stopped throbbing since she had first touched him. She looked at Hazel
and saw that she was satisfied with the image she had on the monitor. Gillian
moved out of the way of the camera view.
Things happened very quickly as soon as Hazel pronounced that
the images were fine. Charlotte and Judith walked across from their desk and
took the boy's arms at either side. They briskly led him to their desk and bent
him over it until his chest was flat to the surface. They had spread his legs
wide until his bottom was nicely placed to the doctor's satisfaction. Miss
Webster looked rather surprised as she was suddenly handed a kidney shaped dish
by the nurse. Nurse Neville also pushed the stool towards her and indicated
that she should sit.
By the time Jean Webster had seated herself, the doctor had
appeared with her gloved hand raised to avoid spilling the glistening lubricant
that coated her fingers.
"Testes and dish please Miss Webster. Don't be surprised if
there is very little, if any, warning."
"Oooomph... hooo... oooh"
"Just relax now , Richard."
The words were redundant as in fact, two fingers had fully
penetrated Richard's bottom before the doctor had finished speaking. He felt
his head being turned to the side and saw the lovely face of Miss Charlotte as
she held his head. The soft palms of her hands holding his blushing cheeks so
that he was looking into her eyes. "Relax for the Doctor, Richard."
The intrusion of the doctor's fingers up into his bottom was
quickly followed by the gentle finger's of Miss Webster's hand, encompassing
his testicles.
Then it happened! The most vivid and traumatic event in
Richard's young life. It happened without respite or warning. Without one
vestige of prior experience. Without one inkling of the emotional trauma or the
vastness of this singular event.
The doctor's words, although not addressed to him were shaming
and humiliating. "Keep a firm pressure please Miss Webster... and you,
Nurse Neville. Little boy's are often very naughty and try and evade their
procedures by wriggling their bottoms. Don't let him try and escape the full
measures of your expertise ladies. I want a full and comprehensive extraction!"
The multiple sensations seemed as if they were synchronised. The
fingers, firmly ensconced within his bottom, suddenly seemed to press against
the very core of his virgin, rectal passage; a stimulation beyond his juvenile
comprehension. At the same time, a long slender hand had fully retracted his
foreskin. The bared tip of his penis was being firmly grasped below the head to
make it fully immobile, so that it was openly available for stimulation In fact, the penis was being held so firmly,
that any naive attempt at evasion was impossible.
An incredible and
overwhelming sensation was being applied to the ultra-sensitive coronal rim of
the glans. If that was not enough, there came the epitome of his sexual
torment; an agonizing and almost unbearable friction, was cruelly being applied
to the very tip of his penis.
Richard's body was locked into a seemingly eternal sexual
exhortation. Each insistent caress, each urgent squeeze, each callous prod and
poke had him writhing in sexual torment.
He was not allowed to evade, even one single sensation.
He had no knowledge of the accomplished procedure that was being
enacted upon his body. It was deft and dextrous, an utterly inescapable and
practised stimulation to every erogenous nerve ending of his body.
The doctor plied her two fingers expertly against his virgin
prostate. Her fingers deft and urgent, reaming with an irresistible pressure
against the very core of his sexual being.
"Ooooohhhh... ah... ah... ooh. Hooo... hoo... sssssss...
ah!" Although varied and plaintiff, his gasps and cry's, were completely
ignored
Nurse Neville, subtlety used both hands upon the coronal rim and
urethral tip of his penis. Her experience outwitted the timidity of the young
boy's sexual inhibitions. Her fingers were unhindered as Doctor Robbins kept
the foreskin fully and firmly retracted.
Miss Webster squeezed and
cajoled his testes to give up their seed. Her stimulation seemed as if she had
a prescience or insight into his inner feelings. The final ingredient to this
onslaught of sexual torments, was Charlotte's soothing voice. Her whispered
endearments, as her fingers stroked his cheeks, was as if he were merely a
child. Her words and delicate touches were truly inspirational.
"Poor baby. Never mind you have to keep your little bottom
relaxed. There, there! Now be brave while the nurse attends to your little
penis. She has to have a thorough ejaculation. Aren't you a lucky boy to have
such a pretty nurse to look after you. She knows just how to treat little boys
like you. So be a good little soldier. Miss Webster is taking good care of your
squidgy little-boy testes for you. Hold tight now, this last little bit makes
little boys' bottoms feel funny inside. But it is all for your own good, so be
a brave little boy."
The tortured ejaculation was heralded by a wail of anguish from
the young boy. Suddenly his wailing stopped as his body became rigid and
seized, as if he was having a fit.
"Ooooohhhhh... ahhhhh... oh... oh"
Gillian had managed to find a space where she could see his
face. The anguish and the guilt at the realisation of what his body was doing,
was written so plainly that she felt a tremor run through her entire body. It
was no coincidence that Charlotte felt a similar thrill as the boy continued to
ejaculate. It was such a prolonged and drawn-out, tortured emission that was
being calmly collected by Miss Webster in the stainless steel dish, that the
girls had the delight of watching the whole expert sexual extortion of his
naive emotions. His writhing and shivering as his semen was dextrously wrested
from his body, delighted them all.
Richard's shame was all consuming. Being observed by Miss
Charlotte and Miss Gillian while he ejaculated, seemed to amplify his guilt.
The bare fact, that he was being observed by everyone, brought his humiliation
to new depths of emotion.
There was no let-up from his tormentors. They applied their
varied expertise until the final reluctant contractions were eventually
stilled. Doctor Robbins, spoke gently but firmly to the young boy.
"I will have to check your emission, so perhaps we can get
you up on the table for a little rest." She looked at the assembled
females as she gently withdrew her fingers from his bottom.
Miss Webster carefully held the dish level as she withdrew it
from beneath his shivering body.
Richard felt physically drained. His first sexual experience had
overwhelmed him and yet his foremost emotions were of guilt and embarrassment.
They have all seen
me. They all know what I have done. How will I ever, ever live this down! How
can I ever face them again?
His eyes focussed upon
Charlotte and Gillian as he felt hands everywhere upon his naked body; holding
him up and moving him towards the examination table.
He listened to the Doctor's words as they helped him to the
examination table.
"I will let him rest for a little while and then we can do
his exercise measurements. Charlotte, I would like you to take charge of the
next extraction. Perhaps now would be a good time for Miss Webster to have a
word with him."
It was only a few moments after he had been laid flat upon the
examination table, that Miss Webster leaned over the prostrated young boy. Her
delicate touch upon his cheek made him open his eyes to look up at her
beautiful face. He blushed immediately.
The next ten minutes had the poor boy in throes of anguish and
embarrassment as Miss Webster explained what would be happening to him on a
daily basis. His blushes became deeper and more profuse as he listened to her
in utter astonishment and embarrassment.
"So Richard, that should take your mind away from any
distractions caused by this little fellow."
Nonchalantly, she laid her hand upon his penis and squeezed it
as she drew it up away from his groin. She held it for a moment and then let it
lay back down over his bulging scrotum.
She could see his utter humiliation at her actions as she
continued.
"The only thing that I have left to say is that: this
regime is a edict from the Principal. If you are recalcitrant, you will be
spanked, perhaps even paddled. Whatever the punishment, it will be severe and,
I would imagine, very shaming for you."
She looked around as Hazel approached the examination couch.
Gillian was following closely behind her. As Hazel came to stand over the boy,
she spoke to Miss Webster.
"He has had a good rest, so I would like to get him
measured and recorded. Am I alright to take him now?"
She did not wait for a reply but took hold of the boy's arm.
"Come with me Richard, we have quite a lot to get through."
Richard was dazed by all the embarrassments he had suffered. It
would be true to say, that each casual humiliation had been compounded by the
next. His self esteem was down to minus zero. He shivered in trepidation as the
young and assertive Miss Hazel
nonchalantly looked at his naked body. He felt more than naked, the bared
shaved flesh of his pubis seemed to make his penis and testicles stand out
prominently, even though his penis was not erect.
He blushed as Gillian took his other arm and he was led like a
prisoner to the central area of the gymnasium. With one girl on either side of
him, holding each of his arms, he still managed to struggle as he saw the
familiar face of Miss Fanwright. She had the remote control in her hands and
was lowering the gymnastic 'steady-rings' down from the ceiling.
Suddenly his body became rigid with shock. He stopped walking
and tried to pull back. He gasped in alarm. "Oh please nooo... oh
please... Miss Fanwright is here. Oh please can't we wait?"
Hazel had not expected such a reaction from the young boy, but
Gillian had. She knew exactly why the boy was reacting so forcefully. Before
Hazel could react, Gillian had smacked the boy across his bare buttocks.
"Come along Richard, surely you don't want Miss Hazel to
have to spank you... do you?"
Hazel moved back a pace so that she could look at Gillian
without the boy seeing her face. Gillian caught the enquiring look and spanked
the boy again.
Hazel quickly acclimatised herself to the situation. She spoke
in a matter-of-fact tone.
"Miss Fanwright is here to help with you with your
exercises, Richard. She will be with you throughout the Doctor's appraisal and
the measurement protocol. So I think you had better get used to the idea and
smartly too! Surely you know that you are not allowed to use the equipment
without qualified personnel in attendance."
Miss Webster had walked up behind them, just as the boy had
stopped and protested in his shock at seeing Miss Fanwright. She moved in front
of them and looked at Richard. "Oh dear Richard, I was hoping that it
would not come to this."
She looked across to her left, where Charlotte and Judith had
been talking with the doctor and the two nurses. "Charlotte dear, would
you mind bringing your chair over here. I have a discipline matter to take care
of."
She looked at Richard again and spoke firmly. "Stand to
attention, with your hands behind you. I don't want to see or hear one more
iota of protest from you. You are a very naughty boy and you are in real
trouble."
Richard was mortified by the way his beautiful pastoral tutor
had spoken and looked at him. He was absolutely shamefaced as he stood in the
prescribed position. His cheeks were one blush of bright red and his body
trembled with shame and guilt.
The doctor and the two nurses followed Charlotte and Judith.
Charlotte placed the chair on the floor and stood back. The doctor quickly
spoke to Miss Webster. "I would like to postpone this little matter, until
after we have the images." She turned to Richard. "No more nonsense, promise
me Richard. Now go with Miss Gillian and Miss Hazel, quickly now.
Richard was blushing and trembling to such an extent, that Hazel
felt that he might faint with embarrassment as they approached Grace Fanwright.
Grace turned towards the shy and timid boy. She was completely cognizant of the
emotional state he was in, but she was delighted to see his perfect physique
presented to her, naked for the first time.
She did not try to hide her curiosity, but deliberately looked
down at his penis and testicles. Pure perfection, she thought as she stood
examining his naked body.
"Let's get you started Richard, take the rings and let me
set the height until you are at full stretch."
To Richard's consternation, she took his wrist and gestured
towards the rings. She whispered in his ear. "The sooner you do this - the
sooner you are finished. Now I want you at full stretch for the first one, then
when I tell you I want a leg-raise with toes pointed forward. OK, let's get to
it."
Richard grasped the rings above his head, while Miss Fanwright
raised the rings until he was on tiptoe.
Hazel moved in front of him. "Look straight at the
camera."
Everyone moved back as Hazel operated the camera from the
laptop. Gillian was thrilled with the crystal-clear image of the naked boy at full
stretch. Gillian was not the only one to admire the perfection of the young
boy's body. Hazel's voice travelled across the gymnasium as she started issuing
instructions for each position. It was a wonderful opportunity for everyone to
examine every detail of the boy's physique. They heard his gasps and groans as
his positions became more and more embarrassing.
Richard's humiliation was beyond his belief. He flinched and
blushed as both Miss Fanwright and Miss Gillian positioned him. Their hands
seemed to be everywhere, nonchalantly spreading his legs, or bending him
backwards and forwards as they wished. He dare not look at their pretty faces
as they manoeuvred him into the positions that Miss Hazel and the Doctor
required. The exercises and positions required great physical effort, and this
had helped Richard avert a full-blown erection.
The session ended with Richard facing away from the camera and
being spread-legged and bent over with his hands wide apart on the floor. His
legs were so widely stretched that only the insides of his feet were touching
the floor. His anus was completely exposed by the wide stance, as were his
penis and testicles hanging down freely and almost touching the floor.
The doctor moved over to Hazel and glanced at the last image.
"Perfect, how many images do we have?"
Hazel smiled. "Well... official ones, fifty-one... and a
couple of hundred of..., ah..., incidentals."
The doctor moved the middle of the floor and spoke to everyone.
"You may attend to your discipline now Miss Webster, if you wish. Then
Charlotte and Judith, I require two more semen samples. One straight after the
other if you please. Now, Gillian you may help with obtaining the boy's
emissions. I am sure Charlotte will give you instruction, and then as soon as
we are finished with Richard, we will get you stripped off for the
camera."
Miss Webster looked at Richard who was standing in front of her
with his hands covering his penis and testicles. His face was flushed with both
his exertion and his embarrassment.
She had looked forward to spanking his bottom, but realised that
she enjoyed his abject embarrassment even more. She could not have explained
herself at that very moment, but her sexual predilection guided her to her
decision.
How humiliating for the young boy if her were to be spanked by
the very person that he admired more than any other member of staff.
Instinctively she turned towards Grace Fanwright who was holding the remote
control that had sent the steady-rings back up towards the motorised pulleys in
the ceiling.
Miss Fanwright, would you come here a moment. Grace looked
rather quizzical but, never-the-less walked over to the academic pastoral
tutor.
"Yes, Miss Webster is there something else that you wish me
to do?"
Miss Webster could see the boy's increased agitation as Miss
Fanwright had approached them both - and immediately knew that she had made the
right decision.
"Yes, if you would please. Richard has been a very naughty
and rather recalcitrant boy during his
examination. I would like you to administer a firm paddling to his bottom
please. I think his punishment would be far more salutary if it came from you.
So if you would place him over your knees and give him a sound spanking."
Before Miss Fanwright could answer she turned towards Gillian,
who was standing with Charlotte and Judith. She could see that all of the young
girls were intrigued by the change of events. "Please Gillian fetch my
paddle would you, as quickly as you can, thank you."
Miss Webster then turned back towards Grace Fanwright whom, she
could see had a faint blush across her pretty cheeks. She moved closer to her
and addressed her quietly. "Grace, I think you would be far more
comfortable without the tracksuit. I am sure you are quite adequately attired
beneath this rather ample suit, are you not?"
Grace coloured up and looked at Miss Webster ruefully.
"Alright Miss Webster give me a moment, would you." Jean nodded to her and watched her walk
quickly to the Gymnasium door, which would lead her to her office. Miss Webster
knew that Grace had fully understood her task and the effect it would have upon
the young boy. She turned back towards him, to see, to her delight, that he was
blushing even more deeply and trembling.
Richard was near to fainting with shame. He could see that Miss
Fanwright had looked embarrassed at Miss Webster's instruction. Was she really
going to spank his bottom? She had always been friendly towards him, praising
his skills at sport and gymnastic within the gymnasium. It was unthinkable,
that she of all people was going to spank his bottom. He stood trembling,
feeling the heat from his cheeks burning as he looked towards his bare feet. He
felt unable to look at anyone, such was his utter humiliation.
His life seemed to have been turned upside down. The sensation
of being made to ejaculate for the first time had shocked him. He had felt no
sensation like it during his young life. Even now, he could still feel a
sensation within his bottom. Something inside him seemed to tingle and throb,
lingering with a physical memory after it had been fully penetrated and
explored. The aftermath of such an experience constantly reminded him of the
intense penetration and manipulation of the doctor's fingers pushing and
cajoling the flesh deep inside his bottom.
It was Hazel that brought over the hard-backed chair to a
position in front of her screen. She placed it firmly on the floor as she
turned to Miss Webster. I thought this would be an admirable position as I
presume you wish his fellow pupils to witness his chastisement. If you all
stand to each side, you will have a perfect view of his punishment. The doctor
and the nurse joined Charlotte and Judith as Gillian hurried over to Miss
Webster. She held the flat paddle in her hand and held it out to Miss Webster.
"It's alright Gillian, I am just waiting for Miss
Fanwright. You may give it to her when she is suitably seated with this naughty
young boy placed across her knees with his bare bottom ready for spanking.
Richard shivered visibly as Miss Webster pronounced his fate.
"Ah here we are." They all turned to see the lovely Grace Fanwright
enter the Gym and walk towards them.
She was dressed in a tight T-Shirt, which seemed to cling to her
upper body. Her ample breasts seemed to be encased individually by the stretchy
thin material. It was very obvious even from a distance that she was wearing
nothing beneath the pure white shirt. Her nipples protruded firmly from the
enticing swell of each breast.
The young pupils thrilled as they examined their young sports
teacher. Below the T-Shirt, she wore a tiny flared tennis skirt. It barely
covered the slender white thong, which was her only other clothing. Her long
thighs and smooth calves seemed to accent the brevity and scantiness of her
clothing. Her bare feet looked extremely neat and delicate as she came to stand
in front of Miss Webster.
Miss Webster could not help the slight hint of amusement in her
face as she addressed the young teacher. "Quite excellent Miss Fanwright.
If you would like to get yourself seated upon the chair, I will get the girls
to position this naughty young man across your knees. She turned to Richard,
who was blushing profusely at the sight of his young teacher. He had never seen
Miss Fanwright without he baggy clothing. Now as she stood in front of him, she
seemed like an apparition from heaven. Her beautiful and innocent face seemed
to look at him with concern. He could not help the tear that ran down his
cheek.
She shook her head as the girl's moved towards the boy.
"No, girls I will deal with Richard, thank you."
Gently she took the boy's wrist, her delicate fingers exerting
no pressure as she spoke softly to him. "Come with me Richard. I don't
want to spank your bottom, but I have to." They all watched as Miss
Fanwright led him to the chair. They noticed that the boy obeyed her
implicitly. "Just stand in front of me for a moment Richard, while I get
seated properly." She sat down upon the chair, placing her pretty knees
together as she looked up into his face. She could see his distress and spoke
softly to him.
"I know this is most embarrassing for you Richard. You are
a lovely boy and I know it is your shyness that has made you so unmanageable.
Please take your hands away from your groin and stand up straight with your
hands by your sides and listen to what I have to say. You may think that my
punishment will change our relationship, but it won't. I will not think any the
worse of you after I have punished you." Her voice was soft, almost loving
as she looked into his blushing face.
"Will you be a good boy and lay across my knees with good
grace and be determined to take you punishment like the brave boy I know and
like?"
Richard was shivering and his face felt that it was on fire. He
could not help looking down at the beautiful young teacher seated before him.
Her body tantalised him. Her breasts seemed to be deliberately pushing towards
him. Her nipples were clearly delineated. The material of her T-Shirt seemed to
envelope the rigid nubs of flesh. Her legs seemed so smooth and long. He
shivered at the thought that his bare flesh would be laid against them.
He shivered in shame as he saw her look directly at his bared
penis and testicles. His shame knew no bounds as she spoke to him again. Her
voice tantalisingly soft and gentle. "I know you are naked and ashamed of
your penis and testicles being exposed to me. Try not to think about it, just
let me position you so that I can punish you as I have been instructed to do.
Now come around to my right-hand side, there that's the way. Now stretch your
arms out in front of you and lean over my legs, I will do the rest."
Richard sighed in acute shame as he obeyed, stretching his arms
out in front of him as he had been instructed. "Right now bend forward...
that's it keep going... just a little more." Richard felt himself
beginning to lose balance as suddenly he quaked in absolute anguish. He felt
her left hand grasp his penis and testicles, lifting them upwards as her right
hand smoothed upwards over the backs of his thighs and on to the flesh of his
bottom. The firm pressure of her right hand tipped him over on to her knees. He
had not noticed her as she had parted her legs, but felt her hand pull away
from his genitals and her firm thighs suddenly squeeze at either side of his
dangling penis and scrotum.
He gasped as her right hand slipped between his buttocks. She
almost lifted him up as she brought his hips further over the gap between her
thighs.
Grace could feel the boy shiver as she deliberately squeezed her
thighs together, feeling his penis produce an immediate answering throb to her
stimulation.
Richard was in a total trauma of embarrassment. It was not as if
he could distance himself from any of it. He clearly heard Gillian speak to
Miss Webster. Although said innocently, he knew that there was a deliberate
mischievousness to her words.
"Miss Webster , shall I give the paddle to Miss Fanwright
now, so that she can spank his bare
bottom with it?"
"In a moment, child. When Miss Fanwright asks you for
it."
Grace looked down at the boy. His naked body seemed perfectly
positioned. His hands were flat upon the floor with his head hanging down. His
bottom was well raised and his penis and testicles were held snugly between the
inner flesh of her thighs. Grace felt a thrill run through her body at her
absolute delight in the perfection of the boy's naked body. She knew that with
a few surreptitious touches, she could have his penis in a full erection.
Almost reverently she laid her right hand upon the back of his left thigh and ran
her hand upwards towards his left buttock, letting her fingers trail in-between
the exciting crevice of his cheeks. She stopped as she felt her fingertips
touch the perineum just behind his bulging scrotum. Her voice was loving and
tender as she addressed him.
"I am so sorry Richard, that you have to be punished. It is
for your own good so that you can learn the error of what you have done. It is
to teach you to co-operate in the future." Her fingers gently toyed with
the sensitive flesh between the cheeks of his bottom, while her thighs squeezed
his penis and testicles tightly between her thighs.
"You are a lovely young boy and perhaps this will teach you
to behave correctly in the future. I will try and make your punishment as
effective as I can - and I hope that you, in turn, will accept it as a salutary
lesson. Are you in a discomfort with your physical position, Richard?"
Richard's reply was completely unintelligible. "Answer me
Richard, I don't want you to strain anything."
"Oh Miss, err I am so sorry. Err no I am O.K."
"Well then Richard, if you are sure, I will proceed."
Miss Fanwright turned towards the young girl holding the paddle.
It was dangling loosely in her hand. "Please hand me the paddle
Gillian."
The young girl moved forward. She seemed mesmerised with the
naked young boy bent so effectively over Miss Fanwright's thighs.
She held out the paddle, which Grace took in her left hand.
"Oh Gillian, as this may take some time. Would you kneel beside Richard's
head and let him rest it against you so that the blood does rush to it. You may
hold his head if that would be more comfortable for you. The girl almost
smirked with delight as she let go of the paddle and knelt down beside Richard.
She spoke condescendingly to him as she knelt in front of his head.
"Just lift your head sweetheart and let me hold you against
my thighs so that you are comfortable while Miss Fanwright smacks your naughty
bare bottom."
She slid her knees between his hands and stopped for a moment.
She undid the buttons of her short skirt until the waist-band was loose. She
slid the skirt down to her knees and lifted up her legs and slid the skirt off.
She folded it and laid it beneath his head before kneeling upon it. Her long
thighs were completely bared right up to her brief panties. She took his head
in her hands and placed his cheek against the juncture of her thighs,
supporting his head and stroking her hand over his cheek. She bent her head low
and whispered in his ear.
"Is that alright sweetheart? My you are crying already and
Miss Fanwright has not started yet. Is it because you are so ashamed, never
mind... you know she is very fond of you and is doing this because it is the
rule."
Richard shivered as Miss Fanright squeezed her thighs together
and stroked her fingers between his buttocks. He felt her movement as she
placed the paddle in her right hand and then placed left hand around his waist,
pulling his body gently against her.
"I am so sorry Richard, try and be a brave boy and take
your punishment"
There was stillness in the room. Miss Webster and the doctor and
nurse stood to the left side while Charlotte and Judith stood to the right.
Hazel was behind her laptop, observing the perfect view of a
naked boy over the bare knees of his beautiful teacher. His head held lovingly
against the bare thighs of a long-legged nymphet. She directed the microphone
that she normally used to record voice notations, towards the naked boy.
She initiated the camera into continuous record mode at sixty
full frames per second and pressed the record button. The new solid-state media
storage she had inserted, had over one hour of space available to it. She put
on her ear-pods and sat down behind the laptop to monitor and enjoy the
proceedings.
Miss Fanwright tightened her delicate fingers around the handle
of the paddle. She could not help the frisson of excitement that ran through
her exquisite body as she raised the paddle. For a moment she was aware that
her nipples had erected, the firm protruding flesh pushing forward so predominantly
that the thin material of her shirt swirled around the hardened nubs of flesh,
accenting her reluctant arousal for everyone to see. Gillian looked up
fascinated as the paddle descended upon the pale unprotected flesh of the young
boy's bottom cheeks.
"Craaaack"
The staccato sound of the first stroke seemed to echo
incessantly around the walls of the gymnasium.
"Hoooo...oooh." Richard's reaction was one of surprise
at the sting of the paddle as it had graced the raised tender flesh of his buttocks.
"Oh missss...oh."
"Be brave Richard, I have to punish you."
Grace's voice was cool and calm as she spoke gently to the young
boy. She waited, letting the pain soak in as
she observed the reddening over the very centre of both of his buttocks.
Richard could not believe just how much his bottom was stinging
as he felt Gillian gently stoke his cheek, her bare thighs seemed to quiver as
she snuggled his head against her.
Richard realised that his spanking had started in earnest. He
had not been prepared for the sharpness of the paddle's sting. He was even less
prepared for the incredible sensation that he felt against his penis. The inner
flesh of her thighs seemed to have rubbed against the very tip of his penis. He
tried not to move as he felt her hand tighten around his waist and heard the
swish of the second stroke as it descended upon his buttocks.
It seemed to envelope both cheeks of his bottom in a poultice of
pain... and at the same time he felt his penis rubbing against the inner flesh
of Miss Fanwright's thighs.
He tried to keep still, but the rubbing seemed to continue,
subtly but firmly he felt his penis being aroused. As the third stroke fell he
felt his penis throb. One singular but knowing manifestation of his reluctant
arousal. It seemed to continue and although the sound of the strokes did not
seem to diminish in their volume around the gymnasium, the intensity seemed
more bearable. He became increasingly aware of his arousal as well as the
gentle fondling of his head as it was held tightly against Gillian's thighs.
Grace had begun a steady cadence of strokes as she carefully
raised her knees on her toes and began to slide her thighs up and down over the
boy's penis and testes. She had felt the singular throb of his penis and now
sensed the gradual thickening of his flesh being held captive between her
thighs. She could sense the excitement of the people around her as she settled
into a steady spanking regime upon the boy's bottom. She had not been told how
many strokes to give him. She assumed, quite rightly, that it had been left
entirely up to her.
"Poor baby, having to have his bare bottom spanked so
severely. Is it hurting you sweetheart, never mind It will soon be time for a
little break... and then I can rub your little bottom for you before I
continue.
She looked down at the boy's head to wait for his reply and
nearly burst out laughing. She was almost sure, although the girl was bending
well over the boy, that his nose was firmly pressed against her pubis.
As the boy became more aroused she increased the hardness of her
strokes until she was able to control his emotions perfectly. His gasps and
protestations had increased proportionately as the spanking progressed, she
knew that she was alternating his pain with pleasure. His penis she knew must
be fully erect. It felt truly hard and was throbbing steadily between her
thighs. She thought it felt absolutely delicious.
His sobs had become more pronounced and she could see and feel
his body tremble as she applied each stroke. She knew that her application of
his punishment would not yet be deemed sufficient by Miss Webster, she
increased the severity until she could feel his penis begin to soften.
She continued for another forty swats over several more minutes,
hearing the boy sob and moan incessantly. She was aware that the boy must
nearly be at the end of his endurance "Pleease miss I am so sorry, oh
please."
"Alright Richard, I am going to give you a little break, so
just lie still while I give your bottom a little rub."
Grace stopped the spanking and handed the paddle to the nurse
who was the person standing nearest to her. Grace noted that the nurse's eyes
were shining brightly and she understood quite quickly that she had been
thoroughly enjoying the naked boy's chastisement. Grace started stroking
Richard in her usual fashion. Her fingers sometimes kneading his buttocks to
alleviate the sting. Sometimes her fingers fluttered gently between the cheeks
of his bottom, taking away his pain with deliberate physical arousal.
"Err, Miss Fanwright would you like a lotion to put on his
bottom before you continue?"
"No thank you nurse. That would be very nice for Richard,
but I am afraid he has a lot more strokes to come. I usually put a lotion on
their bottoms when I have finished their spankings. But I want to see real
tears before we get to that stage."
The nurse looked even more intrigued with the nonchalance of the
spankings at the Saville academy. "Oh in that case, I will have something
ready for you when you finish. Will that be alright Doctor, if Miss Fanwright
applies a lotion, before we complete his examination?
The doctor looked at Grace. "Tell me Miss Fanwright do boys
ever ejaculate when you are punishing them. I don't mean to imply that it is
deliberate on your part of course.
Grace smiled at the doctor. "Yes it does happen, with both
girls and boys. There is obviously a strong attraction by pupils to their
tutors and of course being laid bare across their tutor knees, it can happen
even with a severe spanking. Miss Webster has had the same experience with both
boys and girls.
The doctor looked at her thoughtfully and then asked a further
question. "What is your reaction, if it is a boy that becomes
aroused?"
Miss Webster interjected. "Perhaps, I can explain doctor.
If the boy is close to ejaculation we normally penetrate and manipulate them so
that... err the ejaculation is a complete one. We wouldn't want the student
going back to class with his penis erect and perhaps expressing pre-ejaculate
or perhaps even semen." She paused for a moment and looked keenly at the
doctor.
"That has always been our practice under those
circumstances. Being spanked is sometimes a deeply emotional for a pupil. I had
a girl yesterday that became very emotional, so I had to penetrate and manipulate
her most vigorously. Girls and boys seem to benefit from their chastisement,
but they also realise as we err... attend to them, that we love and care for
them while they are here at the academy."
Grace had continued rubbing the sobbing boy's bottom. Her hand
was soft and gentle as she stroked gently over his buttocks her fingers often
running between his cheeks. She could already feel his penis beginning to
stiffen as she continued with her ministrations. "Poor Richard, my you are
having a sound spanking. You will feel all the better for it once it is
over."
Richard spoke softly, his voice almost muffled as Gillian held
his face against her pubis. Her knees were spread and his face seemed to be
almost buried between the young girl's thighs.
"Oh thank you miss. I am soooo sorry for being naughty. I
promise I will do everything I am told to do in future."
"I am pleased to hear it, now I think it is time that we
continued." Richard did not plead or complain, but seemed resigned to the
continuation of his punishment.
The doctor leaned closer to Miss Fanwright and spoke in a low
voice. "Miss Fanwright would you punish the boy as you normally would and
then... and I hesitate to ask, make him ejaculate. I would need a very firm
penetration and a vigorous prostate milking. Would you be willing to do that
for me?"
Grace answered the doctor in low tones.
"Yes of course doctor. Richard is very naive and shy. I
think it would be most beneficial for him to know that I have to administer a
severe punishment, but that I care for him and hold no negative feelings
towards him."
The doctor whispered. "The jar of lubricant will be ready
for you, it is far more effective than anything that you will have used
before."
The nurse handed the paddle to Grace as she looked down at
Richard's face. "Right Richard, be a brave boy for me. Try and embrace the
paddle, I am doing this just for you sweet boy."
She adjusted his body pulling his waist tightly against her. She
could feel that his penis was hard and throbbing between her thighs as she
raised the paddle. This time Grace knew that the boy would go through the
tortures of hell until he reached that plateau where the pain would suddenly
meld with the pleasure she would bring. She dare not show or annunciate her
excitement at thought of plunging her fingers between his writhing bottom
cheeks and penetrating him to the hilt.
"Craaack"
"Hoooooo...ooooh"
Grace knew that the boy would soon respond to the increase in
both frequency and severity of her strokes.
"Craaaack"
"Hoooo...oooooooohhh."
"Craaaack"
"Hoooo...oooooooohhh."
"Craaaack"
"Ooooo...hah...please misssss."
Grace ignored both the sound of the paddle echoing around the
walls and also the boy's obvious distress. She did however listen to Gillian's
gentle voice muttering comfort and endearments to the boy.
"Poor baby.... such a sound spanking for your naughty
bottom. I'll kiss it all better for you soon, don't you worry, I'll kiss it all
over... those poor cheeks of yours. Just be a brave boy and take your punishment....
you know Miss Fanwright wants you to be such a good boy."
Grace continued diligently. Her strokes were well spaced and
repetitive, allowing the boy no respite from the infernal sting of the paddle.
Grace could feel and see that his body had started to quiver.
She looked down to see that he was sobbing uncontrollably. She instinctively
squeezed her thighs together and, stretching her toes, she began to sensually
move her thighs up and down. Almost immediately she felt the flesh of his penis
begin to swell. Without interrupting the severity of his paddling, she
increased the speed and pressure of her thighs against his penis. Squeezing and
cajoling the flesh of his penis to erect for her.
It was perhaps ten strokes later that she felt the captive flesh
between her thighs suddenly erect fully... and a further ten hard swats before
his penis was throbbing uncontrollably. She looked across at the nurse and
quickly handed her the paddle while the nurse, in turn, offered up the jar of
lubricant. Grace delved her hand into the jar and thrust her hand between the
quivering cheeks of the boys bottom. With consummate ease she located his
sphincter. With her hand turned downwards, she pressed her fingers steadily but
firmly against the tightened stricture of his sphincter - and with a practiced
ease, she dextrously slipped her two fingers firmly up inside him.
Poor baby, what a brave little boy you've been, let me make all
better for you. She slipped her left hand underneath him and encircled the
rigid flesh of his penis. She pulled back his foreskin and bared every inch of
the flesh beneath. She rubbed both thighs against the fully exposed rim of his
glans. At the same time, she callously rubbed her fingers firmly over his
prostate gland. The effect was as if he had been electrocuted.
"Hoooooo.....oooooohhhh...ahhh."
"Just relax, there's a brave boy."
Grace was quite sure that the boy's forced endurance of both
pain and pleasure was beyond his wildest comprehension. She looked down at his
head to see that Gillian had his face pressed between her thighs and that both
her hands were busily squeezing his nipples. Grace increased the speed of her
manipulation, her right hand thrusting and prodding his prostate while her
thighs wickedly rubbed against the completely exposed nerve-endings of his
penis.
Suddenly his body locked solid. His legs straightened and his
head raised from between Gillian's thighs until he was braced like a solid
piece of wood across the bare thighs of his tutor. Although his buttocks had
trapped her wrist, Grace did not still her fingers. They scored incessantly
over the naked boys prostate gland. His whole body seemed to be in suspended
animation, as grace cruelly and expertly raped his flesh of every last vestige
of sexual emotion.
His penis erupted into a series of violent spasms. Semen spurted
from the tip in a series of bursts that splattered against the floor. It seemed
like it would go on forever... one after the other after the other.
Splat...splat...splat...splat.
Abruptly his body shuddered in a series of mini-quakes, each
quake accompanied by a tortured emission of semen.
Grace had never seen such a prolonged ejaculation and yet she
stimulated him mercilessly until he finally collapsed across her thighs. His
breath was ragged and uneven as he slowly began to emerge from his ordeal. His
young body was absorbing and recovering from his emotional crisis. His mind
held a myriad of such intense sensations that he seemed content to concentrate
on the one emotion that preceded all other feelings. It was the love and care
that he felt towards his tormentors, Miss Fanwright and Miss Gillian.
Grace held him to her, her fingers gently slipping from inside
his bottom to caress and pet him. She pushed her right hand beneath him clasping
her fingers around his still plump penis and scrotum. Her left hand stroked
over his back as Gillian held his head gently against her breasts.
Their voices were soft and tender. "Poor baby, your little
bottom is all red with your spanking. Such a big spanking for such a little
boy. Never mind sweetheart is was all for your own good. Now you just lay nice
and quietly until Miss Charlotte and Miss Judith come for you.
*
For Richard, like many other boys that had been deemed to be
reaching that self-abuse stage of puberty, life changed completely. The program
was monitored from the onset and it soon showed a marked improvement in
academic achievement and a far more respectful attitude from the boys towards
all of the girls.
The younger girls who had been trained as extractors were now
all addressed as Miss. Miss Gillian, Miss Sandra etc. The respect was genuine,
although it was backed up by spankings of all kinds. Extractors were now
allowed to execute spankings under the appropriate supervision of a prefect or
member of staff. Boys had gradually become used to the ultimate authority of
all of the female students, regardless of age.
The girls had soon discovered that it was fun to swap boys who
needed extraction. It might be, as a boy lay in bed that a completely new set
of female students would enter his room. This kept the boys on their toes and
gave the female students great excitement at being able to handle someone new.
It was on a Tuesday morning that Richard was laid in bed. He had
completed his ablutions and was laid, as was prescribed, in bed wearing his
pyjama bottoms. Miss Gillian entered the room and stood by his bed.
"Well Richard, how are you this fine morning?"
"Oh well, err, I am fine. Are you on your own today?"
"Of course not silly, now just lay back and clasp your
hands under the pillow. You should know the rules by now."
Richard sighed. "Oh of course Miss Gillian." He
managed to blush even before Gillian had begun.
Gillian moved to the side of the bed and stripped back the
covers to his feet. She leaned forward and delicately took the cord of his
pyjamas in her hand. She undid it, watching the boy's embarrassment as she
opened the garment and laid each side of the fly against the sheet, leaving his
penis and testicles exposed. Casually she went to the sink and washed her hands
under the cold tap until they became icy cold. She moved back to the bed and
sat upon the edge of it, watching the boy's face as she took hold of the tip of
his penis with her left hand.
Richard shuddered with the coolness of her hand holding his
penis, and his embarrassment at the nonchalant way she had handled him. She
raised his penis until it was standing straight up and slipped her other hand
beneath his scrotum.
"Oooohh Miss Gillian."
"Now what is the matter with you this morning Richard, you
know I have to do this. Now don't you?"
Richard sighed with resignation. "Yes Miss Gillian. Of
course Miss Gillian.
"Good boy now just relax."
"Yes Miss Gillian. Even though her hands were cold and she
only held the very tip of his penis, he began to erect. He blushed as he always
did as his inner feelings became apparent.
"Good boy Richard, I just want you to know that there is
someone new coming to perform your extraction for you today. So it might not be
my fingers slippy-sliding inside your bottom this morning."
Richard blushed profusely as Miss Gillian held his penis upwards
by the very tip. Her other hand was cupping his scrotum, but she had made no
move to proceed further. She just held him exactly as she had first done. She
watched as his penis engorged. Little by little the flesh filled out until his
penis was standing straight up on it's own.
He sighed in embarrassment again as he fought not to ask the
question that she knew was upon his lips.
Miss Gillian delicately let go of his penis and withdrew her
hand from underneath his bulging scrotum.
"Right Richard, put your hands out from under the pillow
and grasp the bedrails, come along. You know you have to do it if I say
so." Richard looked surprised but
did as she asked. He had never been recalcitrant or disobeyed any of her
instructions... and yet she was treating him as if he may disobey her.
"I know you have never been difficult Richard, but it is in
the rules that you may be restrained if your extractor requests it. So come
along and raise each wrist when I ask for it." She felt in her pocket for
the Velcro ties and slipped one on each of his wrists before fastening them to
the rails. "Good boy Richard, now let me slip those silly pyjamas down.
Shall I?"
He shivered as her cool hands were placed against his hips.
Slowly she let her hands travel down his thighs and shins before she whisked
them away.
"My Richard, you have such a lovely body. Look your penis
just throbbed, I wonder what brought that on."
Richard blushed again. It didn't matter what Miss Gillian did,
she always had a teasing way of arousing him without any effort on her part.
She looked at her watch. It was showing one minute to seven. The door suddenly
burst open as Miss Charlotte rushed in pushing the trolley containing
everything they would need for the boy's compulsory semen extraction.
"What time is it Gillian? My watch has stopped, batteries
again I suppose." She looked at the naked boy laid before her.
"My you have been busy. What a nice erection you have
produced." Richard was blushing, as he always did when he was being
observed. But the main reason was his innate guilt that his penis had erected
without any real provocation from Miss Gillian.
"I think he erected in anticipation. I've fastened his
wrists for this morning. I thought it might be best under the circumstances.
Charlotte smiled. Yes, it most certainly will be."
Right I haven't got the supports out yet, it won't take me a
minute. She went to the largest of the built-in cupboards and pulled out two
chromium-plated tubes with contoured pads on the top of them. A third tube,
which was straight had clamps at either end. She left that one leaning up
against the bed as she concentrated upon the padded supports. They looked like
oddly shaped crutches apart from the size and shape of the pads which were
large and U-shaped. The bottom of the chromium plated rods were bent at a right
angle and curled around to form a triangle. She pushed the support under the
side of the bed so that the pad was level with her shoulder. She took the other
one to the other side of the bed and slid that underneath, so that now Richard
had two U-shaped supports opposite each thigh.
"Shall I do this side Miss Charlotte? I think it is time to
get started?" Without waiting for an answer Miss Gillian moved to the
middle of the of the bed and gently slipped her hand under Richard's knee.
Richard watched Miss Charlotte as she moved to the nearside and slipped her
hand underneath his right knee.
"O.K. Gillian, one... two... three." The girls hoisted
his legs into the air and pressed them towards his chest. His legs were well up
in the air before the girls moved them outwards. They let his legs down
slightly, until his calves were firmly ensconced within the padded U of the
support. Miss Charlotte quickly clamped the straight tube to the support at her
side of the bed and Miss Gillian clamped her side. The stirrups were now firmly
planted and would not move. Nor more importantly for the girls would Richard be
able to move especially as Miss Gillian was already fastening a tie to the top
of the clamp on her side, she threw the other one to Miss Charlotte who also
fastened his calf into the stirrup.
Richard was suddenly looking quite indignant at having his legs
fastened as well as his hands. They had only used the restraints for the first
week of his extractions and had never used them since.
"You don't have to fasten me in Miss Charlotte." At
exactly that moment the door opened and his sister Francis walked in. "Is
that right Richard. You don't need restraints, well I am pleased to hear it. I
see that your little peenie-weenie is stiff already. Have you been having
naughty thoughts?"
Richard struggled for a few moments, but he already knew the futility
of his actions. "Francis, WHAT are you doing here?"
Francis smiled at her fourteen-year-old older brother and smiled
sweetly. "You can drop that tone with me, or I will take the paddle to
your bottom. Now address me properly and I will forego paddling your cute
little tushy until it is bright red.
"Francis this is not right. YOU ARE NOT STAYING HERE!"
Francis looked at her brother. His naked body was splayed openly
for her inspection. She saw Miss Charlotte and Miss Gillian stand back from the
bed so that she had full access to her brother. She walked towards him and
gently laid her left hand on his tummy, with her right hand she placed her
fingers delicately around his erection and slid back the prepuce until it would
retract no further. To her delight and his chagrin, he was fully and shamefully
exposed.
Richard struggled in vain with his bindings. His chest heaved
and the sinews in his legs strained, but it was all to no avail.
Francis ignored him she squeezed his penis feeling it throb as
she spoke to Miss Charlotte. "I suppose we had better sort this out sooner
rather than later. I don't want to report him to the Principal, but he has to
learn."
Yes of course Francis, I will be back in a few moments.
Francis squeezed his penis harder feeling it throb a she slid
her hand up from his tummy to his right nipple. Almost nonchalantly she scored
her fingernail over the nub of flesh, backwards and forwards until the flesh
was erectile. She moved her hand slowly smoothing her fingers delicately over his
chest until her fingernail was able to score over his left nipple. It was but a
few seconds before this too was standing out.
She let go of his penis and stood away from the bed. She looked
at him with amusement as he realised that both of his nipples were hard and
fully erect and that his penis was throbbing with arousal. He had never felt so
embarrassed. That his little sister should see him naked was bad enough, but to
be splayed open with his penis throbbing of it's own volition, made him blush to
the core.
Francis had hoped that Richard would merely be embarrassed at
her appearance this morning. But all three girls had discussed it several times
over the previous days and had all come to the conclusion that Richards
acceptance would be hard won.
Francis looked at her brother, his indignant and belligerent
expression made it easier for her to carry out what she realistically knew she
would have to do. Everyone looked towards the door. Miss Charlotte came in and
handed Francis the regulation paddle. She put her hand up to Francis's cheek
and spoke softly to her. I know this is going to upset you, But it must be
done.
Francis looked at her and nodded. She bit her lip as she moved
to the bed below the stirrup. She did not address her brother but gestured to
Miss Charlotte and Miss Gillian to move forward at each side of the bed above
the stirrups. Please pull his penis and testicles as far forward as you can. I
will be very careful, but do stretch them as far away as you can. Thank you.
Without warning she began to spank the paddle hard against her
brothers buttocks. Her strokes were quick but carefully measured. Francis had
already practiced time and time again on a propped up pillow, with wax figures
pinned to it. She had practiced until she could deliver two hundred strokes in
one go without touching any of the wax.
She could hear Richard cursing her as she bent to her task. She
had placed her left arm around his raised thigh. She nonchalantly stroked up
and down the inner flesh of his thigh as she proceeded with his chastisement.
She knew that it would take some considerable time to break his temper, but she
knew that she had all the time she needed. Miss Charlotte had already informed
the teachers of the morning classes that all of them would require absentee
passes.
As Richard began to cry out with the pain from her paddle she
began to spank his thighs. She was aware how intense the pain would be, but she
also knew that this kind of punishment would be required. The loud slap of the
paddle was incessant, not once did she vary her stroke as she reddened his
flesh. She felt a slight thrill as his anguished cries and complaints suddenly
turned into sobs.
On she went, she had subconsciously counted to one hundred swats
and yet she continued. She did not glance up from her task either to the girls
or to Richard. On and on she continued, covering his flesh with sharp measured
swats from the paddle. His buttocks and the inner flesh of both thighs had been
reddened profusely as she started to concentrate of the very centre of his
bottom.
The flesh flattened with each stroke as he cried with despair.
He sobbed and sobbed, his tears were unseen by Francis as she kept her eyes on
the targeted flesh. Suddenly she realised that his cries were different. No
longer was he centred upon himself. She felt a thrill as she heard his
trembling voice cry out to her.
"Oh Miss Francis, pleeease Miss Francis I am so sorry. I
promise to obey you, dear Miss Francis pleease have mercy." Francis
stopped her spanking and gestured for Miss Charlotte and Miss Gillian to
release their hold upon his genitals. She glanced at his groin noting that his
penis was no longer erect although slightly engorged.
She stood against the bed and looked down at him. She could see
that he was in total distress. She could never have imagined herself spanking
anyone so severely "Please Miss Francis I am so sorry. You have been a
lovely sister to me. You know I love as surely as I know I was wrong to disobey
you. I treated you as a lesser being than any of the other girls. I see it now
and I beg your forgiveness. Please Miss Francis, please forgive me."
She looked at his face, knowing that he understood the full
implication of his behaviour. There was
a tear in her eye as she looked at him with love and affection. "Well done
Richard, I know you understand now. I will let you settle down while the girls
clean you up. Then I will start your extraction."
Richard blushed furiously as Francis knew he would. She smiled
at him and touched her fingers to his lips. "Just relax Richard and we
will start over."
Miss Charlotte whispered to her. "Well done Francis. I
thought you were never going to stop, but you knew exactly what you were
looking for. Now go and have a shower and do your make-up. I want your brother
to look at you in awe and adoration. Take your time, you are in charge today so
let's make it memorable for him in more ways than one. Francis smiled with
happiness as she realised that she had won a great victory.
Miss Charlotte turned her attention to Richard. "Right
young man let's get you cleaned up with a nice bath and then get you back in
the stirrups for your extraction. I presume that we will not need the
restraints any more. Am I correct?"
Richard blushed and then looked up to Miss Charlotte. "I
promise Miss Charlotte, I have truly learned my lesson."
It was moments later when Miss Francis returned to her room. She
had had some realisations of her own. Yes she had thought, because Richard is
my brother, he has never thought of me as anything other than his little
sister... his kid sister. He must be made to look up to me, even though I am
younger and have always been around. I have made a start with his punishment,
but he has to see me in a new light.
She went to her wardrobe and took from it a sheer white tunic.
The tunic had been designed by Miss Webster for the volunteers of the
extraction program. It had been decided that they would not be worn until all
the tunics had been delivered to all of the girls on the program. She had not tried
it on yet, but decided if it fitted it would be an ideal opportunity to show a
new Francis to Richard, In actual fact she thought a very new MISS FRANCIS.
She headed for the shower and luxuriated under the piping hot
water. Her nerves felt less sensitive and the shower seemed to have calmed her
nerves from the intense spanking she had given Richard. She had hated hurting
him but she knew that without it things would not have worked out.
Ordinarily Francis loved spanking boys. A young boy face down over
her knees, excited her tremendously and spanking him to obedience had made her
excitingly wet on most occasions. But Richard's spanking had been mere
necessity.
She began to apply her makeup. She had become quite expert over
the past year and as the academy encouraged girls to look their best, there
were plenty of tips for a thirteen-year-old girl who wanted to explore makeup
styles until she found her own look. Francis normally wore very little makeup
during class but since she had become one of the very first extractors, she had
immediately realised the benefit of wearing enticing makeup.
Today had to be special and so she took great care. It was half
an hour later that she stood naked in front of her full length mirror. Her skin
was flawless, she was entirely bereft of hair and she noticed that her body was
filling out nicely. She loved the plumpness of her young breasts, she hoped
that they would not develop further. Her legs were long and her thighs and
calves were toned beautifully. Yes she thought, the boys could do a lot worse.
Her hair and makeup were perfect, now for the dress. She took
the dress and put it on, It buttoned up the front so that a girl could be as
daring as she wished. The white cotton of the tunic was so fine that she was
sure that she could see a hint of pink skin showing through. She tried the
light behind her and then in front of her, but there was nothing other than the
tiniest hint of pink. Although her nipples were tantalisingly visible.
She wondered dare she? No, she thought. If today is as exciting
as I think it is going to be then I will definitely be wet. She chose a thong,
which would have certainly been against school rules. Fortunately volunteers
for the extraction program were exempt. She did not even consider a bra as she
slid the thong up under the tunic. The material fell back in place without the
hint of a crease. She slipped into her slender thong sandals. They consisted of
a flat sole and two thongs that tied criss-crossed around her calves. The white
thongs matched her tunic perfectly.
Now just the right amount of buttons to undo. She experimented,
striding back and forth across the view of the mirror, until she had the
perfect glimpses of thigh and breast.
Back in Richard's room, Miss Charlotte and Miss Gillian had
bathed Francis's brother, requiring him to stand with his legs wide apart and
his hands upon his head as they soaped every inch of him. Miss Charlotte had
insisted upon him bending over as she slipped two fingers deep inside him until
his penis became fully erect. Then Miss Gillian had retracted his foreskin
fully as she washed behind it.
They had both been conscious of avoiding him ejaculating. They
shaved his pubis and the shaft of his penis before shaving between the cheeks
of his bottom and under his arms. There was never any hair visible when he was
shaved, as it was carried out every other day in the nurse's surgery. However
the girls delighted in doing it whenever they had the opportunity.
Miss Gillian had changed his sheets and pillow cases and had
prepared the stirrups with the centre bar extended so that his legs would be
not only high but several inches wider.
They had him lay back on the bed and once more placed his legs
within the confines of the stirrups. He
was blushing profusely as they stretched him into the new position. Yes,
widening the bar had certainly worked wonders. His long legs were stretched
obscenely and embarrassingly wide, every inch of his body was open for
inspection.
Both girls knew that young Francis would be delighted to see her
brother displayed so openly. You are a lucky girl thought Miss Gillian as she
stoked her fingers gently down the boys naked body. His penis was already
tumescent as she inspected him. She moved to the sink to run her hands under the
cold tap. As before, she let them become icy cold before she sat upon the edge
of the bed and took hold of the tip of his penis between her finger and thumb.
She raised it to an upright position before she slid her other hand underneath
his bulging scrotum. She did not know whether Richard's shiver was from the
cold or from déjà vu.
Both Charlotte and Gillian looked up in surprise as Francis
stepped through the door. Charlotte gave
her an appreciative look as she moved to the bed.
"Richard, Miss Francis is here to begin your extraction,
please give her your full attention."
Charlotte was quite happy for Francis to take charge, she knew
that she was the most experienced girl in the academy apart from herself.
Richard looked at his sister as she approached the bed. He
blushed immediately as he saw how sexy and mature she looked. On top of that
she was wearing a clinicians tunic, which gave her a very superior air of
authority.
"Right Richard, after all your recalcitrance we are very
much behind in your schedule. So I will proceed without the usual
preparation."
Richard felt nervous even though it was his younger sister. His
embarrassment was still apparent as he blushed at her no nonsense attitude. His
face turned bright red as he watched her pull on a latex glove and snap the
cuff against her wrist.
"Right, Richard, deep breaths please and try and relax your
bottom. Boys are so difficult when they tense their bottoms." With these
words Richard felt her gently lift his testicles. Her un-gloved hand was soft
and warm as she gently held them in her palm.
Her voice was soft and low as she spoke to him as if her were a
child. "Right sweetheart, just relax your little bottom for me."
Richard shivered as he felt her fingers press gently against his sphincter.
Suddenly her fingers seemed to slip inside him without the usual stretching of
his sphincter.
He could feel her withdraw her fingers and then gently press
against his sphincter again. This time she seemed to gradually stretch his
sphincter wide and then wider still. The pressure still seemed nowhere as
intense as he felt with Miss Charlotte.
"Deep breaths there's a good little boy, just relax
now." Suddenly he was aware that the pressure had increased. It was not
abrupt, but gradually he felt his sphincter being just as widely stretched as
it had been in the past. He took deep breaths, hoping that this was the full
extent of the stretching. Unfortunately for Richard it was not.
Her voice was the voice of dental assistant or nurse, as she
calmed her patient for even more procedures. "There we are sweetheart,
almost done... deep breaths please... there we go in... out... in... out."
Her fingers seemed to match his breathing as his sphincter was stretched wider
than he thought possible. Suddenly the inside of his bottom seemed extremely
sensitive as her hand orientated around to the angle she wanted.
She did not know whether Richard had realised that she had four
fingers inside him penetrating him right up to the juncture of her thumb. It
gave her so much more control over the stimulation of a young boy's prostate
gland.
"Just relax darling boy, while I stroke you gently."
Her bare left-hand smoothed over his testicles as she reached for his penis.
"I am just going to feel your little penis sweetheart, I promise to be
very gentle with your precious little peenie-weenie." Her slender fingers
gently enveloped the top of his penis. Carefully, she retracted his foreskin
until it was stretched tighter Richard ever thought it could be.
"Take a deep breath sweetheart." She waited until she
was sure that he was obeying her. "Now a really deep one." As he
breathed in again, it felt like his bottom had been shocked by a cattle prod.
He shivered and shook as Francis cleverly scored the pads of her fingers in a
circle around the circumference of his prostate gland.
She felt the sudden deep throb of his penis in her other hand.
"Good boy, now keep those deep breaths going. In... out... in... out...
that's the way."
Richard was in a daze as he looked at his little sister. She
looked totally different. She had always been pretty, even to an older
brother's eyes. But the aloof authoritarian girl that was handling him so
professionally, was someone else altogether. He could see her nipples move
against the fine cloth of her tunic. Her body seem to be lithe and sexy. Had he
not noticed her before? It seemed that she knew every nuance of his feelings.
He felt small and belittled as if he had become child-like, where she had
become the strict teacher and the caring nurse rolled into one.
He felt a guilty excitement as she handled him so cleverly and
with such aplomb. Surely he should not feel this way. His body shuddered as
every sensitive part of his body was explored and cruelly stimulated.
With four fingers inside his bottom, she not only, had as much
reach as she wanted, which meant that she could apply her fingers to his
prostate gland in either direction. But she could also flex her fingers
together like someone beckoning a car as it was reversing. She knew none of the
other girls had hands slender enough to be able to penetrate a young boy's
bottom like she could.
She looked across at Charlotte.
"Would you and Miss Gillian assist me now I am in position."
Both girls knew exactly what to do as Francis offered the sensitive unprotected
flesh of his bared penis to her ministrations. She knew that Richard was as
hard as possible and that his bared flesh would be sensitive to the extreme.
"Try and relax sweetie and keep taking those deep breaths."
Richard shivered as Miss Gillian deliberately enveloped his
testes in her icy grip. She reached and squeezed his nipples several times each
as she watched Miss Charlotte flatten the palm of one hand as she placed the
fingers of her other hand tightly around the top of his penis. Gripping him
just below the glans. On a cue from Francis, Charlotte rotated the stiffened
palm of her hand in a circular pattern, pressing gently but agonisingly over
the sensitive opening of his urethra.
Miss Gillian squeezed his testes firmly on cue as Francis began
to prod his prostate in a rapid fire movement. Richard gasped in shock as each
sensation seemed to combine together, to produce a stimulation that was more
than his young body could stand. His back arched away from the bed, the sinews
in his legs became taut and immobile. His head was suddenly thrown back in
utter anguish.
His anguish was so acute that he finally found his voice.
"Oh please noooo... it is too sensitive... oh..."
Francis watched Charlotte as she nonchalantly took her palm away
from the tip of his penis and began stroke up and down. The bared part of the
shaft of his penis was now so sensitive that Charlotte dipped her free hand in
the jar of lubricant and applied it to the rim of the glans. She accomplished
the task without losing her speed or her contact with the highly-sensitive
exposed coronal rim.
Richard's mind was in turmoil. How could his little sister
elicit such agonising sensations from his body. He was being made to feel
gauche and juvenile while every possible nerve ending seemed to have been
brought to a heightened sensitivity. A sensitivity that his body could not
resist or endure.
Francis was in heaven as Richard writhed and shuddered. His body
was in absolute turmoil, his legs twisted and contorted within their confines,
and his toes curled and straightened as he tried to absorb the sexual torment
that three delicate pairs of hands were callously and expertly wresting from
his body.
It would be true to say that he was in absolute torment. Francis
felt the impending eruption deep within the sensitive core of his body. She let
her fingers scissor over every millimetre of his throbbing prostate. She was at
the very heart of the volcano, able to predict exactly when it would erupt and,
combined with her experience, estimate the volume of its eruption.
Richard knew he was about to ejaculate... and yet it seemed so
wrong. My god... my little sister is watching me. Looking into my face, waiting
for signs because she knows what I am going to do... and Oh my God I can't stop
it!
Francis seemed to have an almost psychic knowledge of the young
boy's feelings that she instinctively knew where to apply pressure. Her
experience with Colin, as well as other boys that she had been asked to milk,
had enabled Francis towards a rapid understanding of the sexual psyche of the
young boys at the academy.
As they writhed in the final throws of their torment, she was
able to cajole and reinforce their innermost feeling of childlike dependence
upon the caring female.
Francis spoke clearly, calmly and authoritatively. "Miss
Charlotte would you apply a little more stimulus please. You now how these
young boys try and evade their procedure. Miss Gillian, we will be ready for a
collection in only a few moments."
"Now Richard, I want a nice big ejaculation from you. I
know your little bottom is sore, but I will smack you if you keep wriggling and
wiggling. I can assure you young man, that I will not allow you to evade or
dilute a thorough extraction."
Her words seemed to be the final ignominy. She could feel his
prostate pulsing wildly as he ejaculated. She had not seen such a tortured
emission. His face and body delighted her. Her expert, exquisite but vigorous
stimulation was resulting in a prolonged and tumultuous anguished extraction.
Richard realized she had won. She could to him what she whatever
she wanted and he was helpless. His guilt at being made to, no forced to
ejaculate for his little sister seemed so wrong and yet his sexual excitement
had never been so strong or so prolonged. Oh my God!
The girls watched in delight as thick globules of semen
splattered into the test-tube. Again and again he ejaculated, his body stiff
and unyielding as if its only purpose was to emit copious amounts of semen.
Francis watched as each emission was captured by Miss Gillian. She watched as
Charlotte drew her finger up the shaft to captures the final beads of his
agonising and overwhelming forced extraction.
"Poor baby, you are in a state aren't you sweetheart. Never
mind it is all for your own good. Now Miss Gillian will just give your
testicles a little squeeze to make sure you are not hiding anything in those
plump little balls of yours."
Francis delighted in his juvenile blushes as she taunted him.
Gillian smirked at Francis as she squeezed his testicles,
watching the boy's face grimace as his body shuddered before sinking back into
the bed.
They let him lay exhausted upon the bed. Over the next twenty
minutes they had washed him as if he were a baby. Talked to him as if he were a
young child... in fact cocooned him into luxurious sense of well-being.
Francis had leaned over him several times, her voice as caring
and as endearing as any young nurse caring for a good-looking boy. And then, as
if it was the most natural thing in the world she had kissed his lips. At the
same time as she kissed him, her delicate fingers had roamed over his chest and
downward until she had captured his penis and testicles in her hand. She had
thrust her tongue between his lips, spearing and penetrating his mouth as
comprehensively as her slender fingers had penetrated his bottom.
Richard had gasped as she released his lips. "Don't worry
sweetheart, I am going to take good care of you. I am going to milk you so
thoroughly that you will never ever have any distractions. Never ever!"
She squeezed his penis until he gasped.
"I am going to love you and cherish you... and sweetheart
if you ever let me down, I am going to take your bare little bottom over my
knees and spank and spank and spank until you cry and cry and cry. Do you
understand Richard, you will always have respect for me, always... and I will
always love and care for you. Well Richard, what do you say?"
Richard did not have to think, he knew.
"Oh Yes Miss Francis."
Francis stroked his cheek and stood for a few moments examining
his perfect physique. Richard looked closely at his sister as she stood by the
bed. He could see the gentle swell of her bare breast through the unbuttoned
tunic. He could see the tiny waist above her firm hips, the long thighs and
shins above the daintiest of feet. My
God, she is perfect... perfect for me!
Francis looked at both girls as she spoke. She did not dare to
observe the look of shock on her brother's face when he heard her words.
"Right girls, lets get to work. I want another full and
comprehensive extraction. I want him to be completely drained of his semen. He
is not to be allowed to evade any of this extraction. It is to be most
thorough. I want to make sure that this young man knows exactly how comprehensive
our extractions can be."
She could see that both girls had turned towards Richard. She
risked a quick glance, seeing his complete shock and horror to the news.
Blithely she carried on talking to girls and ignoring Richard.
"We will be going
home for the long vacation next week and I want Richard to be well used to
multiple extractions before we leave. Are you both looking forward to spending
your summer vacation at our home. I have a lot planned and my aunt is so
looking forward to meeting you both. I have informed my aunt of our privileges
as members of the extraction volunteer group, and she is rather intrigued and
very much looking forward to observing our methods !"
Francis did not need to observe Richard's face as she slipped on
a latex glove and snapped the wrist.
Epilogue
They had arrived at
the home of Francis and Richard just after midday. Aunt Ruth had greeted them
with a mildly restrained wild enthusiasm. After their initial greeting she had
ushered Francis, Gillian and Richard up the grand staircase, instructing
Francis and Richard to take the luggage to their respective rooms and show
Gillian to her room. She had immediately taken Charlotte into the kitchen where
she made two coffees in the professional looking coffee maker, and seated them
both at the table.
"Come along then
Charlotte, spill the beans. You must know that I am bursting to know what is
happening with Richard." Charlotte looked at Aunt Ruth, she seemed far too
young to have brought two children up from an early age.
"No Aunt Ruth,
first you tell me how a woman of.... what are you, twenty-four?" Ruth
turned her head, "Twenty-seven, but only just. Richard was three and Francis was still a
baby when the air crash happened. I was thirteen. Their parents had some very
good friends, who live a few miles down the beach. They handled the will, the
insurance payout, which was absolutely huge - and all the arrangements for me
to live here and administer the money as soon as I was old enough. They had
arranged for a nanny for the children - and a live-in tutor for me. Harriett,
who was my sister's best friend, more or less lived with us until I was
nineteen. But of course as soon as they were admitted to Savilles the pressure
was off and I have continued to study languages here at home. I miss my sister,
but have been compensated by having her children, Francis and Richard."
Charlotte
instinctively took hold of Ruth's hand across the table. "I can't believe
that you have brought two children up. You are so beautiful... and I bet your
sister was too, to have such beautiful children."
"Yes she was...
and so are you Charlotte. Now come on spill the beans."
Charlotte spent the
next forty minutes telling Ruth everything. From her own and Judith's
experiences with Jim, to the thrilling part that both Francis and Gillian had
played in the young boy’s regime.
They were eventually
interrupted by Gillian and Francis. "I have instructed Richard to prepare
himself for a thorough milking as he missed it this morning because of the
early flight."
Ruth looked at Francis
and gave her a look of disapproval. "Don't you want your brother to miss
even one day of from your attentions Francis?
Francis grinned and
leaned over and kissed Ruth on the cheek. "No, I want you to see what we
do... and I know Richard will just die of embarrassment when he see's you
watching him Aunty. But, my dear lovely Aunty Ruth," she grinned cheekily,
"I thought you would have been able to get that examination couch I asked
you for by now. Did you not find a supplier for them?"
"I suppose you had
all better come with me." Ruth said as she stood up from the table. Oh
where is Richard?" Francis looked slightly puzzled but answered the
question. "Oh he has to prepare himself and then go to bed in just his
pyjama bottoms and wait for us."
"Follow me then,
all of you." She led the girls through the corridors of the large house,
stopping in the sitting room for a moment so they could look through its open glass doors to the magnificent ocean
view. They continued on to a room situated off a wide corridor. She did not
open the door, but turned to the three girls. "You may show your friends
the results of my research and preparations. I have enjoyed doing it... and I
think I may have exceeded your expectations Francis."
Francis looked
mystified and intrigued as Ruth stood back and gestured to the girls. "In
you go... and you can tell me how well - or badly I have done - after you have
examined everything."
Ruth stood back and
watched Francis lead Charlotte and Gillian into the room. She could hear their excited
chatter and gasps of astonishment as they seemed to be rushing everywhere
within the room. She knew eventually that they would look into the adjoining
bathroom. She waited as she heard drawers opening and closing and then the soft
pneumatic whine of machinery. When she heard their laughter, she knew that they
had entered the bathroom.
She waited for
another five minutes before she entered the room herself. The girls were
laughing between their gasps of amazement as they explored all of the equipment.
Ruth looked at them, seeing their delighted faces.
In the middle of the
room stood the 'Elite Gynaecological Couch' It was fully decked out with deep
padded stirrups. There was a comprehensive foot controller for its fully
automatic memory operation. Around the room were rows of drawers cupboards and
shelves. A medical trolley with drawers and castors stood alongside the
electronic couch. A similar, but smaller one stood next to it. Ruth had filled
the shelves with lubricants, towels, latex gloves and a vast selection of
bottles and jars. The various consumables gave the room a fully 'ready for use'
look.
She knew that the
bathroom would have intrigued them particularly, with its plumbed in 'Angel of
Water' colonic irrigation system. She had to admit to herself that she had had,
without doubt, the most wonderful month overseeing the work that had completely
changed the unused downstairs bedroom. It was now, without doubt, a
comprehensively and fully equipped medical clinic. Ruth had cleverly ordered the
equipment and installation from a New York company, so that there could be no
local builder, plumbers or suppliers to gossip about her preparations. She had delighted in picturing Richard's
beautiful naked body draped over the luxurious 'Angel of Water' couch and
having him feel the wonderful sensations that she had felt when she had tried
it out.
"I presume, your
faces are a sign of you approval. Am I right?" Francis rushed over and
hugged her Aunt. "Its amazing, no better than that... miraculous!"
She stood back as the other joined her. "This bed is mega-miraculous . I
thought the one I chose was good, but this one is out of this world." She
dragged her Aunt over to the examination
couch, which was finished in a bright yellow, fully washable, vinyl. "It's
got so many controls and adjustments. Please show me... it's amazing!"
Ruth laughed as she
showed them the electronic adjustments and then the memory store for up to
ninety-nine different positions. "I think we will be able to store quite a
few different positions for Richard this afternoon, don't you girls."
Charlotte looked at
Ruth and saw the same look in her eye that she had seen when she had first
introduced Zoe to Jim’s naked body.
Gillian suddenly
interrupted. "Let me go and check on Richard, I will be back in a few
moments... that is if I don't get lost in this beautiful house." She dived
out of the door before anyone could comment.
Gillian met Richard
at the top of the stairs, he blushed as she looked at him. "Oh Miss
Gillian, I am just going to the bathroom. I have been putting all my things
away."
"Don't worry
Richard, take your time. Put you pyjama bottoms on when you have showered, and
then come downstairs to the sitting room." Richard blushed. "Oh Miss
Gillian... I don't want Aunty Ruth to see me, erm... she might wonder why I am
only erm... wearing my..."
Gillian cut him off
from finishing the sentence.
"You will do as
you are told Richard. But, as I have said, there is no hurry. It is two pm. I
will expect you in the sitting room at three. If you are not there in your
pyjama bottoms and nothing else. I will spank your pretty little bottom until
you cry real tears. You won't be able to hide that from your Aunty Ruth now
will you? I mean being spanked over the knees of a little thirteen-year-old
girl like me!"
Richard blushed and
was just about to turn towards the bathroom door when Gillian smiled kindly at
him. She took his waist with both hands and drew him towards her. She bent her
head upwards and kissed him on the lips. She thrust her tongue into his mouth
and held him in a lingering kiss. He gasped for air as she released his lips.
She could feel his penis erecting and dropped her hand to his groin. She
squeezed him through his trousers before she let him go. His face was bright red
as he stumbled into the bathroom.
"Three o' clock,
Richard!"
Gillian dived into
the beautiful bedroom that she had been allocated and started going through the
dresses that were hanging from her folding clothes carriers. She found her new
white cotton tunic that Miss Webster had supplied and laid it on the bed. She
smiled to herself as she thought about the dress. Miss Webster had allowed two
inches extra length to account for her extremely long legs. Gillian had stood in front of her
full length mirror and adjusted the fine cotton tunic with pins until it was on
the limit of being 'barely decent'. She had taken it to one of the academy's
house keepers, one who was particularly proficient with needle and thread, and had had her
re-sew the hem.
Knowing that Richard
would be occupied for quite a while, she stripped her clothes off until she was
standing naked. She could not help admiring her svelte young body in the
mirror. Deliciously she smoothed her fingers over her nipples until they stood
out proudly from her breasts. She smirked at the firm nubs of flesh, delighting
in the feel and the sight of herself. She picked up her tunic and walked
quickly out of the bedroom and down the wide grand stairway.
She was well prepared
for everyone's look of astonishment as she walked into the newly built clinic.
Before Aunt Ruth, Charlotte or Francis could get over their astonishment, she
had laid her dress over the medical trolley and had placed her smooth bottom
cheeks upon the examination couch.
"Richard is in
the bathroom and I have told him to come to the sitting room at three o'clock,
suitably undressed of course. So that gives us nearly an hour to get me in
position. I presume you will need to practice upon a live model... and maybe
memorise one or two embarrassing positions. Especially the width and height of
the stirrups." She grinned at them, her pretty face and slender naked body
looked absolutely divine.
The girls and Aunt
Ruth where laughing as they approached the examination couch. It was Charlotte
that set the tone.
"Well Gillian,
we will use you to adjust the couch. But you need not think that it will end
there. Naughty girls that walk around without proper clothing get their bottoms
spanked. I might add Gillian, that I am still head girl. You will address me as
such while your bottom and vagina are being fully and thoroughly penetrated. I
assure you young lady, that you will be squirming in those stirrups by the time
we have finished with you."
Charlotte looked at
Aunt Ruth. "Would you like to help me get this young girl in the stirrups.
I want her high and wide. But first I think we will get her in a good position
so that her pretty bottom is raised for a spanking. It will do her good... and
get the blood flowing to the right area."
Aunt Ruth saw Gillian
blush, but also saw that her nipples, which had already been firmly aroused,
had been stiffening gradually while Charlotte had been speaking to her. They
had stiffened so much that the girl had to rub her hand over them to assuage
their prominent rigidity.
They positioned her,
ignoring her gasps as her thighs were rudely brought towards her head by the
effectiveness of the bed's sophisticated mechanisms. Eventually, her long
thighs were almost touching her breasts. Her shins were raised high and wide over her head.
Her pretty bottom had
been raised up from the bed by the positioning of her legs; her buttocks were
now spread wide open by the width of the stirrups.
Charlotte again took
charge. "Ruth, can I ask you to give this wanton young thirteen-year-old a
thorough and vigorous hand-spanking!"
Francis, who had been
stood watching the proceedings, spoke softly into her Aunt's ear. Her cheeks
blushed to a pretty pink as she whispered her instruction so that Gillian could
not hear. "Aunty Ruth, please would you play with her little clitty-bean
while you spank her. I think she would look delicious if you were to do that to
her. Charlotte and I will hold her still if she starts squirming too
much."
Ruth looked at
Francis and smiled. "I know Francis. But don't forget the shopping list
you gave me. Look in the top drawer of the trolley."
Francis couldn't for
a moment remember the contents of the pages and pages of instructions that she
had emailed to her Aunt. She looked into the top drawer of the trolley and saw
the yellow Velcro straps.
"Oh Aunty, they
even match the couch."
Ruth looked at her
smiling in a superior way. "They are baggage safety straps. They are nice
and soft and should work fine. Look in the second drawer."
Francis was intrigued
as she lifted out the straps and passed them to Charlotte. She quickly opened
the second drawer and looked inside. Laid neatly in row upon row were a total
of twenty-six vibrators. Each was a different size and shape, although most
were similarly phallic, there was still a comprehensive representation for
every possible use. Some were metal, some plastic. One intriguing one, had a
ball-shaped end. It was quite large sitting at the end of a slim curved rod.
The base of it thickened to a leaf-shaped flange. A wire ran from the flange to
a small neat plastic box.
Francis looked at
Ruth with an expression of disbelief and intrigue as she turned towards
Gillian. Gillian's arms were laid above her head and had been fastened by two
long straps.
"Right it looks
like I am in charge for the moment. So Charlotte, hand me that jar of medical
grade lubricant would you. Francis, you may just stroke her between her legs
for a moment."
Francis looked at
Gillian who grimaced at her comically. Francis placed her hand gently over
Gillian's proud, plump mound of flesh that looked so enticing. Francis placed
her hand, palm-down, between her widely-spread thighs and began to stroke
gently. She could already feel the wetness beneath her hand as she delicately
stroked over the sensitive flesh. Gillian shivered deliciously as she was
stimulated by Francis's intuitive strokes; only to suddenly gasp when Ruth,
without warning, applied the cold lubricant with a firm slap to the delicate
rosebud of her anus.
"You had better
relax your bottom Gillian, I can spank quite severely, especially on the bare
bottoms of naughty girls who flaunt their bodies. Now just relax." Her
fingers delved firmly between the young girl's buttocks. Suddenly she slipped
her index finger firmly and dextrously up through the sphincter.
Gillian suddenly
cried out. "Hooo... oooh, Aunty Ruth... oh, oh, oooOOH."
Ruth whispered to
Francis. "Just choose a nice one for your friend." She gestured
towards the drawer of vibrators. "They are all fully charged."
Francis grinned and
felt in the drawer, her other hand never leaving the plump and quivering
pudenda of her friend. She glanced at the vibrator as she passed it to her
Aunty Ruth.
"Not a bad
choice, Francis"
Gillian suddenly
shivered, her body quivering with sensation as Ruth pushed a second finger into
her anus.
"Just relax
sweetheart. Aunty Ruth knows just how to deal with naughty little girls."
She slipped her fingers in and out of the ring of muscle as she steadily
dilated it.
"Deep breaths
sweetheart, here we go, just relax that little rosebud!" Gillian gasped
and wriggled her whole body. The girls could almost feel her excitement as Ruth
slipped her fingers out of the girl and introduced the snub-nosed vibrator.
They heard Gillian expel her breath in a loud gasp as the vibrator slid up into
her bottom. The flange slipped home between her cheeks as if the vibrator had
been sucked into her bottom.
"Oh... ah...
ah... umph."
"There we are
all done and ready for your smack bottom."
Gillian could hardly
contain her feeling of trepidation as the large intrusion slid up into her
bottom. She shivered again as Ruth placed her hand next to Francis's and placed
her first two fingers on either side of the girl's clitoris.
Suddenly Ruth raised
her right hand and slapped the young girl's bottom. Gillian gasped and wriggled
within the tight confines of the examination couch.
"Smack...
smack... smack... smack..." Ruth watched and felt the girl shiver quite
violently. She quickly became aware of the wetness seeping from the plump lips
of the young girl's virgin pudenda. She spanked in a steady rhythm as she
earnestly stimulated the girl's erect and quivering clitoris. She watched
Francis casually slip her slender fingers inside quivering young girl. The
pliant peach slices seemed to grip Francis's hand as her fingers began to move
inside.
Gillian moaned, her
voice shakily forming her words. "Oh pleeeease nooo... nooo, oh please.
Francis felt guilty
as she scissored her fingers back and forth in a flurry, knowing that the
sensation would be almost unbearable. At the same time, Ruth casually slipped
the prepuce from her clitoris. The flesh was already erected and Ruth smiled as
she began to spank harder. She watched Charlotte reach for the girl's breasts
hidden beneath her thighs. Cruelly, and deliberately, she took one nipple
between the fingers of each hand and squeezed firmly.
"Hoooo... oh...
oh no."
Gillian began to
shiver and shake with the onslaught. Ruth nonchalantly twisted the base of the
vibrator between spanks. She watched as Gillian's body reacted immediately.
Goose bumps appeared all over her slender pubescent body and she became
completely rigid.
"Oh... please
no... I can't stand it... what are you doing to me... eee... ahhh."
Nonchalantly, Ruth
took her clitoris between finger and thumb and rubbed them back and forth over
the erectile flesh. To everyone's surprise Gillian's young body suddenly went
into violent spasms. Her flesh quaked in sheer and unadulterated sexual
sensation. She seemed to growl as her orgasm enveloped every single
nerve-ending of her barely pubescent body. Her senses, for the first time in
her young life, had been subjected to a prolonged and ultimately unbearable
torture. It was so exquisitely tormenting that she was almost apoplectic.
Surely no-one could withstand this excruciating sexual torture.
The girls, stimulated
her well beyond her naive endurance, until, inevitably, her body collapsed.
Charlotte quickly let go of the beautiful young girl and pressed the foot-pedal
remote to relieve the stirrups. Ruth switched off the vibrator and slipped it
from her bottom. The stirrups moved back, allowing the girl's legs to extend
into a relaxed position. Gillian was breathing hard, as if she had just run a
race. Her pretty mouth was open, her pink lips glistening with moisture. She
could feel the comforting hand of Aunty Ruth, gently cupping her prominently
raised pubis as she lay in absolute sexual satiation. Although she had been
through the most extreme sexual trauma, her thoughts were already focussing.
Such intensity. Such a wicked combination. The mercurial
cruelty of simultaneously applied, unbearable pain and forced intense sexual
stimulation.
It was several
minutes before she could fully comprehend the full extent of her violent
orgasm. She felt Charlotte release her arms and gently stroke her breasts. My
god, she thought to herself. Is that what we are doing to those young boys? She
could not help the spear of wicked pleasure that pierced upwards between her
legs at that very thought.
The instigators of
Gillian's acute trauma gradually began to lighten their conversation as Gillian
recovered on the gynaecological couch. After a brief respite she got shakily to
her feet and headed for the bathroom. She grinned at the two girls and winked
cheekily at Aunty Ruth. "I seem to have shot myself in the foot there,
then. I vote we take it in turns, so who is next?" She tripped herself in
a comic gesture before disappearing through the doorway. The girls laughed
heartily at her remarks and comic walk.
It was twenty minutes later that Gillian had showered and stepped into
her tunic. She was completely naked beneath it. Charlotte and Francis had
freshened their make-up and had dressed in their tunics too, although they had
both decided to wear panties.
As they all sat in
the sitting room, there was an unvoiced air of expectation and suspense. Ruth
was dressed in a clinicians dress with a high collar. It was one of many that
had been gifted to her by the equipment suppliers. She had made coffee for the
girls and had brought a fruit juice for the boy. Richard had not yet come down,
as it was still ten minutes before three. Francis, looked at each of them in
turn.
He is going to die of shame, embarrassment and
humiliation. I just know he is!
Aunt Ruth spoke to
all of the girls. "You have all had first-hand experience of Richard's
procedure. So, I was thinking that perhaps it would be best if we went back
into the clinic and left Francis to tell the boy what his regime for the rest
of the vacation would be. What do you all think?"
Francis looked at her
Aunt. "No Aunty, we will all go into the clinic and you may wait here for
Richard. Take your time with him Aunty. I know he will be very embarrassed, but
we had better get it over with, and you are the person to do it."
Without another word,
the girls trooped out leaving Ruth alone on the settee. She had got used to
Francis and her dominant attitude. Although she was precocious, Ruth realised
that she was probably right. Although rueful that it had been left to her to
break the ice with Richard.
It was only a few
moments later that Richard walked through the doorway. He blushed profusely and
stammered. He was bare-chested, and bare-footed. His pyjama bottoms had the
usual opening in the front - and Richard on seeing his Aunt, immediately
clasped his hands over the opening. She could see his eyes widen in
astonishment at the sight of her short clinician's dress.
Richard was
dumbfounded, he had not seen his Aunt Ruth, dressed like this before. Well at
least not since he had been around eight or nine, when they would have a
babysitter to look after them and she would wait for the stretch limousine to
take her to the theatre or gallery. Very few girls are able to look impeccable
without make up. Ruth had that rare beautiful skin, that almost glistens, being
so smooth and flawless.
Richard saw, that
now, with just the merest touch of expertly applied make-up, Aunty Ruth was not
just beautiful, she was stunning! Richard could not take his eyes off her. Her
long, lightly-tanned legs, seemed to go on forever. Especially with the hem of
her dress being stretched across the upper regions of her beautifully-shaped
thighs.
Her waist looked
impossibly narrow, and yet, her slender torso supported her full
exquisitely-shaped breasts. Instead of just swelling her tunic, each breast
seemed to be swathed individually in the fine white cotton material. The collar
of the dress, was ostensibly, just like a shirt collar, except that it
fastened, with no opening high on her graceful neck. The smooth material was
almost touching her fine jaw-line, which was further enhanced by her hair,
which was pulled back and neatly tied behind her head.
"Oh Aunty erm... I was expecting erm...
Miss Francis and erm... Miss Charlotte and Miss Gillian. Oh Aunt, they told me
to come in here... erm... because... and I have to address them all as Miss. It
is the rule, er it is since... er school..."
Richard would have
continued babbling if Ruth had not interjected. She gracefully tilted her head
as she spoke.
"Don't worry
darling, I know all about it. You don't have to worry about any of it. I have
made some changes in the house, so that Miss Francis, Miss Charlotte and Miss
Gillian can make your daily extractions far more thorough. The girls will now
have complete access to every inch of your body. So just relax and let me have a good look at you darling."
Richard blushed
profusely as Ruth mentioned his extraction and that it would be even more
thorough. His hands, which were still firmly clasped in the front of his
pyjamas, seemed to tighten. His bare chest heaved with embarrassment.
"Come and stand
in front of me Richard." The young boy stumbled until he was standing in
front of his seated Aunt.
"My you are a
good boy. Now take those hands away and stand up straight." Richard just
blushed deeper still, but did not move his hands.
"I know you are
embarrassed but you must obey me. Now put your hands upon the top of your
head... I mean, right now, Richard."
He looked shocked at
the firm tone of his beautiful Aunty Ruth. She had never spoken to him so
sternly. His cheeks coloured up again as he quickly put his hands upon his
head.
"Good boy
Richard, now listen to me. I know that Francis has had to paddle your bare
bottom until you cried. You may think it would be embarrassing for you to have
to tell me that your little sister spanked your bare bottom. But it was the
right thing for her to do. She spanked you until you suddenly realised how much
you had belittled her." Ruth paused, anticipating the moment, she knew was
to come very soon. She continued.
Francis made you
realise, how wrong you had been, and that shows just how wise she is. Little
girls are far more mature than little boys. So from now on she will always be
in charge of you when I am not here. You will eventually understand, exactly
why she will be in charge of you and the reasons for it. If you behave Richard,
and obey her implicitly, it might save you having to be spanked on the bare
bottom again. Do you understand me?"
Richard blushed
further but nodded his head. "Yes Aunty."
"Good boy,
Richard. Now stand still while I take your pyjamas down."
"But... but
Aunty."
"Now don't make
a fuss. She put her hands upon each side
of his naked torso and slid them down to his waist. She felt his body shiver
from her touch. She could see and feel his consternation as she moved her hands
together over the front of his pyjama bottoms. Delicately she took the cord and
pulled the ends. She could feel the nervous jolt of shame run through his body
as the bottoms slid down his legs to the floor. She placed her hands upon his
hips and spoke to him softly.
"There we are,
just step out of them and let me have a look at you."
He was shivering in
shame as she looked into his face. "Now just keep still." She looked
down, already aware that his penis was filling out. She watched him, alternating her view between his
blushing face and his rapidly erecting penis.
"Just stay as
you are, she murmured, as she slipped her right-hand between his legs and
cupped his scrotum. Richard jerked his hips and shivered from the cool,
delicate and sensual touch of her hand.
How could he survive
his utter humiliation. She had looked into his eyes and seemingly made him
watch her, as she had deliberately looked down at his bared penis and
testicles. Then, against all hope of a reprieve, he had watched her hand reach
between his legs and felt the incredible sensation of her delicate fingers
wrapping around his scrotum. She looked so cool and imperious, whereas he felt
hot, gauche and utterly humiliated.
"My, my,
Richard, you are growing up. Your little testes are really full and
heavy." She reached for his penis with her left hand and immediately
skinned his foreskin back. She could feel his body quake with an immediate and
violent tremor. His hips writhed at her touch, as she held his pale, burgeoning
penis and plump testicles with both of her hands.
What a beautiful boy. His body and face are perfect. His
penis and testicles are such a delight. Oh my Richard, how delicious you are!
Richard knew
immediately that he had lost. His penis reacted as soon as he felt the first
contact. My god she had bared his penis fully, his foreskin was stretched so
tightly that he dare not move.
His penis suddenly
throbbed in her hands, the soft velvety tube of his foreskin was stretched
tight, as slowly but inevitably the boy erected. "No wonder, you were not
able to control your erections, Richard. We will have to take you firmly in
hand for the entire vacation. I think you will need to be milked far more
thoroughly and far more often, especially if you are to get through your
holiday work."
Richard felt a
nervous sensation in the pit of his stomach as her words properly sank in.
"Now turn around
and bend over so that I can examine your bottom." She took her hands away
from him, delighting in the throbbing erection she had left him with.
"Now bend right
over and grasp your ankles, there that's the way." She placed both hands
upon his buttocks and stretched them apart. She could clearly see the neat
little rosebud as she stroked her fingers down in-between the deep cleft of his
buttocks and over the timid recoiling flesh of his sphincter.
Richard was cocooned
in utter shame as he bent over. My God,
she is looking between my bottom cheeks... she can see everything.
"Good boy. You
may stand up now and face me." She watched his shame-faced shuffle as he
turned to face her again. She was thrilled to see that he had replaced his
hands upon his head.
"I am sure that
Miss Charlotte, Miss Francis and Miss Gillian will soon have those little balls
of yours completely emptied. Now, you may drink your juice and then I want you
to keep your hands upon your head while I walk you through to our new facility.
I have had it installed in the old downstairs bedroom. The girls will be able
to milk you far more efficiently there, now that they have the proper
equipment... and of course you will be far more comfortable."
At that moment,
Richard gave up. But that did not help him to distance himself from the shame
and humiliation he felt, nor inure him from future shame and embarrassment.
Ruth sat back
gracefully, delighting in the vision of his perfect physique while he
drank. It was delightful to have him
naked and under her control, fully sanctioned by his school doctor.
Moments later, she
rested her hand upon the top of his buttocks as she walked him through the
corridor. His rigid penis was swinging from side to side as he walked. His face
was absolutely bright red and his lips were quivering with embarrassment. The
door to the clinic was slightly ajar. She slapped his bottom sharply, urging
him through the doorway and into the room. His gasp of amazement at the
complete change within the room, was followed by a second, larger gasp of trepidation
as he saw that the girls were waiting for him, all three of them beautifully
alluring and dressed to perfection, in white clinical tunics.
And yet here he was.
Almost two years older than his sister and Miss Gillian. Standing naked with
his erection sticking out in front of him. The shame of it weighing heavier
than he could bear. He saw Miss Gillian deliberately look at his erection, she
turned her head so overtly that he had to pay attention to the look of
amusement upon her face. He felt his eyes drawn to her long legs. The hem of
her dress was so high that it seemed to finish almost at the juncture of her
thighs.
Francis moved forward
quickly and took him by the arm while he was still in shock.
"Come along
Richard, we need to get your little peenie milked until those plump squidgy
balls of your are completely empty. I don't want any fidgeting when I play
'Lucky-Dip' inside your pretty bottom."
Richard blushed
immediately to a deeply-heated shade of red. He remembered how, when they were
younger, Francis had always played lucky dip by pulling up her sleeve and
plunging the whole of her arm into the sack. She would rummage around, with her
little fingers searching every nook and cranny of the large coloured sack until
she found the biggest present. He looked at her in pure embarrassment as she
pouted at him exactly as she used to, when he and Aunty Ruth would shout for
her to hurry up.
Francis could see by
his blushes that he had remembered. She looked up at him and pouted once more.
"I am going to dig deeper this time." She thrilled as his lips
trembled with embarrassment.
The other arm was
quickly taken by Gillian, as they both seated him on the end of the low
examination couch and quickly laid him back. It took only a few moments, before
they had hoisted his legs into the stirrups and Charlotte had fastened his
hands firmly above his head.
She bent over him
with her lips only inches away from his face. He could feel her sweet breath
against his burning cheeks. "Hold tight sweetheart and we will take good
care of you." She kissed him softly on the lips and spent several moments
looking in to his eyes, which were already glistening with the shame he felt.
She nodded to Ruth, who moved her foot forward and pressed the controller to
'Position One'. She looked up to see the alarm upon his face as the bed moved
automatically.
Its movements were
steady and smooth as the stirrups separated to a width far wider than he had
ever experienced, and then upwards to a height that seemed to take all the weight
from his bottom cheeks. The backrest lowered until his back was laid absolutely
flat. Charlotte immediately placed a tiny pillow beneath his head, checking
that his arms were fully secure at the same time.
Richard had never
felt so openly displayed. His legs were spread wider and higher than when he
was laid upon the table at his school examination.
Ruth watched as the
naked boy was helplessly spread open wide. His pale, erect penis and bulging
scrotum were completely unhindered. Every inch of him was deliciously available
to the young girls.
His face was crimson
with utter humiliation. His shame was amplified by the fact that each girl was
pretty to the extreme, their nubile young bodies, sexily clad in white tightly
tailored tunics gave them the air of a doctor or nurse. In fact it was exactly
like the dress-up game of 'Doctor and Nurse' but where, unfortunately for
him... he was the patient, naked for them to examine as they pleased. Richard,
the permanently naked patient, could not have felt more humbled or mortified.
He suddenly felt the
whole bed raise up until it was at optimum height for the attentions of his
sister and her friends. He looked at his Aunt and blushed immediately on seeing
her intimately examining his erect penis.
Ruth had suddenly
realised that the boy had been shaved bare, even under his arms.
It was Charlotte that
instigated the first actions and instructions. "Now Richard, I want your
Aunty Ruth to be able to observe how we stimulate you, so that you are forced
to ejaculate." She laid her hand gently against his left nipple and toyed
with it idly as she continued.
"Now Ruth, I
know that you are obviously cognizant of a young boy's anatomy. But I will
explain what we are going to do, just as a matter of course. If that would be
alright?"
Ruth nodded her head,
knowing that Richard would be totally embarrassed by the dialogue.
"Now, Richard's
first ejaculation will be obtained quite quickly. It is just the dilation of
the anus that takes time." Richard immediately gasped with shock as he
realised that he was going to be made to ejaculate twice.
"Oh please Miss
Charlotte... please not twice!"
Charlotte looked at
him kindly as she leaned her face over his. "Now don't interrupt
sweetheart. I am talking to your Aunty Ruth."
Richard blushed. He
wanted to continue protesting, but he dare not.
"Now, Miss
Francis will penetrate his bottom quite thoroughly, until his sphincter is
fully dilated. She will then stroke her fingers over his prostate gland while I
manipulate his penis. As you can probably guess, little boys often try to evade
our stimulation, especially if they feel it is too intense. So, for that
reason, Gillian will retract his foreskin or prepuce until all the nerves of
his penis are fully exposed. She will keep the skin retracted throughout the
entire procedure, so he will not be able to avoid my thorough stimulation of
his penis."
She looked down at
Richard's blushing face and touched her delicate fingers to his lips to show
him that his silence was required.
"Gillian will
first rotate the palm of her hand against the tip of his urethra. This is an
extreme stimulation that sensitises the nerves without causing immediate
ejaculation. Richard can be very naughty while this is being applied, so if he
starts wriggling, would you spank his little bottom for me? I mean for you to
do it while Gillian is stimulating him. It would be most helpful."
She smiled at Ruth as she continued.
"When Gillian is
finished, she will hold the foreskin tightly, stretching it fully downwards,
while I begin to stimulate the exposed flesh. Francis will warn me of his
impending ejaculation, so if you will hold the glass for me Ruth. Today I am
going to use both of my hands upon the exposed crown and rim of his penis.
"Oh Miss... Miss
Charlotte."
Charlotte turned her
attention to the young boy who was trembling with the thought of what was to
come. He was also blushing to an even deeper red. His face wreathed with utter
embarrassment. He could hardly contemplate that his Aunt Ruth would be witnessing
his utter degradation.
"Please be quiet
Richard, I am talking."
She turned her head
back towards Ruth. "As he ejaculates, his sister will squeeze his testes
firmly, ensuring a thorough evacuation of his semen."
She turned to
Francis. "We had better get him started Francis."
Francis moved between
his widely spread legs, wheeling the smaller trolley with her. The jar of
lubricant was on the surface, with the top already removed. There was a large
empty glass measuring beaker standing next to the lid as well as small hand
towels, several tubes of differing lubricants and a bulbous rectal thermometer
Next to the thermometer was a long-jawed rectal speculum.
She spoke to her
Aunt, making sure that Richard could hear her. "If you would just stand there
Aunty, you will be able to see everything and be ready to spank his little
bottom for him. If you want the paddle to spank him with, I have left one on
the shelves behind you."
Richard groaned in
anguish. He did not realise how cleverly the girls were deliberately
embarrassing him. Had he known, it might have been worse, for he could have
been sure that, although their words and actions might differ, he would always
be thoroughly shamed and embarrassed by them.
Ruth watched avidly
as Francis stood between his legs and began to gently apply lubricant to her
right hand. Ruth saw her lower the fully lubricated palm and fingers to the
point on the boy, where the spine meets the buttocks. Deftly, she stroked the
pads of her fingers and the palm of her hand, up and down the crevice of his
bottom, pressing firmly over the sphincter each time her hand passed the
ultra-sensitive rosebud. She bent her elbow so that her could exert maximum
pressure to the quivering ring of muscle that was centred between the widely
spread cheeks of his bottom.
"Oooohh...
noooo... Misssss."
His gasps and
protestations were ignored as Francis re-greased her hands and nonchalantly
slipped two fingers up into his bottom. Ruth was fascinated by the way her
young niece worked her slender hands in and around the sensitive sphincter. She
could see the timid rosebud recoiling as she looked closely between the cheeks
of his bottom. She looked at Francis, she could see her face in studied
concentration. Perhaps there was
something else in her expression, she thought. Ruth was intrigued and watched
Francis closely.
Her tongue was
protruding prettily through her parted lips. Her sensual touch upon the boy
seemed to be giving her intense pleasure, if Ruth had read her expression
correctly.
Further up the
examination couch, both Gillian and Charlotte were gently stroking their hands
over the boy's naked body. they watched him shudder and gasp as Francis
dexterously plied her busy fingers between his cheeks. Occasionally she nudged
the back of her hand against his bulging scrotum as her wrists flexed with her
ever-increasing intrusion into his bottom.
Ruth watched as
suddenly a third finger entered into the delicate opening of her naked young
nephew. He was groaning loudly as Francis stretched the tender muscle of his
sphincter. Her voice was clear and precise, but Ruth could detect an undertone
of sensuality. "Hold tight now Richard and try and relax your little
bottom for me."
Without effort her
little finger joined the others, and she began the exciting task of slowly
stretching his sphincter wider to accommodate her knuckles.
"Oh pleease Miss
Francis... ooooOOHH. Please Miss Francis... no more!"
"Just relax
sweetie, we are nearly done. Now you know the routine... deep breaths, come
along... in... out... in... out."
Francis waited until
her brother began to copy her instruction, timidly drawing in and exhaling his
breath. She pushed slowly but firmly until her hand had penetrated him right up
to the juncture of her thumb. "Big breaths, Richard." She hardly gave
him time to comply as she expertly rotated her hand until she was able to feel
his prostate gland with all of her four fingers.
His body shuddered in
anguish at her deft manoeuvre.
She nodded towards
Gillian Who moved forward. Both Ruth and Francis noticed how sexily she walked,
and how deliberately teasing were her movements. She scooped her hand under his
scrotum and rolled the testes between her fingers. She looked into his face and
spoke provocatively to the boy.
"Just to think
Richard, I've got your squidgy little-boy-balls in the palm of my hand. My,
they are nice and plump. Miss Francis is going to give them a nice big squeeze
when we make you squirt. Now, just hold tight while I peel your little banana.
Please promise you won't wriggle so much, I will be very careful with your
little pee-pee!"
Ruth looked at
Richard watching him tremble and blush at Gillian's word. What a little minx! Every movement, every action or word is an absolute
sexual tease. My, the poor boy!
Ruth watched as
Gillian wrapped her slender little hand around the throbbing shaft of Richard's
penis. The boy bucked his hips in shock, as she deliberately slipped the skin
downwards until it was stretched so tightly, that the tip of his penis tilted
towards her.
"Ahhh...
hoooo... oooOOOH!"
"Do keep still
Richard, you know that I've still got to play with your little pee-pee hole.
Now try not to wiggle and wriggle like a little worm. You know Aunty Ruth will
spank your naughty bottom if you try and escape my hands. Little boys are so
naughty! Here we go... are you ready to play 'ring-a-ring-of roses' like a good
little pumpkin?"
As Gillian spoke
those words, she began to rotate the palm of her hand in a wide circle. Ruth
noticed that her hand was fully tensed and flattened. Ruth could see how
excruciating that sort of stimulation would be against such a sensitive part of
the penis. Ruth watched in amazement as she cruelly rotated the palm firmly
against the urethral opening. The boy was shuddering wildly as his penis was
assaulted beyond his endurance. Gillian began to sing softly in her little-girl
voice as her hand rotated, scoring over the urethral tip of his penis without
ever losing contact or releasing pressure.
"Ring a ring a roses, a pocket full of posies..."
Ruth knew that his
wild movements were inevitable. The boy tried to lever his hips from the bed in
utter anguish. "Ooooohhh... HooOOO."
Ruth leaned toward
Francis who had left her enough room for her to raise her hand high. She
spanked hard in a flurry of slaps that had the boy's bottom cheeks stinging
almost immediately. She stopped her spanking as the boy cried out in distress.
"Oh... oh no
please, it's too sensitive... oh please... Miss Gillian."
Gillian smirked at
Ruth as she gave the boy's penis an extra rotation before she stopped.
"There we are sweetie-pie... fancy having Aunty Ruth spank your little
tushy. Now stay still for Miss Charlotte."
Ruth saw the boy
suddenly jerk and shiver and looked towards Francis, whose hand had suddenly pushed
further into the anus of the anguished young boy.
Francis spoke clearly
as Charlotte applied a thin layer of lubricant onto the palm of each hand.
"Here we go Richard, it won't take long. Be a brave boy while I play
'Lucky-Dip'."
Francis thrilled as
she watched her brother blush in utter torment. You are really going to feel my
fingers today, big brother, she thought as she began her manipulation.
Ruth could see the
movement of muscle beneath the smooth flesh of Francis's forearm as she began
to diligently work her fingers. She would have been astounded, had she been
able to observe the incessant flurry of her niece's fingers against the boy's
prostate.
Ruth did wonder
though, just how intensely Francis was probing and cajoling the very core of his
bottom. She could see the girl's ministrations were obviously incredibly
effective. Richard's body was reacting to each movement that Francis made
inside his bottom.
The gentle strokes of
Charlotte's hands had rapidly intensified as the boy's body became rigid. His
mouth gaped open and his cries filled the room.
"Oooohhh
pleeeeease nooo. Ooooh ahhhaahhhhHHH."
He began to shudder
violently, his sinews stretched, seemingly to breaking point.
Francis quickly
handed Ruth a glass beaker and then, just as quickly, grasped the boy's swollen
Scrotum. Ruth noticed that her forearm and wrist
had never stopped moving as she diligently coaxed her brother towards a
torturous ejaculation. Suddenly Francis began to tense all four fingers in a
rapid squeezing motion. Ruth could see her that her arm was moving rapidly. The
boy immediately responded to the increased pressure and speed of his
stimulation.
"OoooooohhhhHHH.
Oh please no... I can't bear it... Oh Miss Francis... hoooooHH."
Charlotte had
increased the firmness of her grip, eliciting the maximum sensation from his
bared flesh. Her fingers brooked no evasion as she scored over the exposed
nerves, deftly and firmly. She proceeded to use a hand-over-hand motion in such
a blindingly rapid movement, that Richard wailed in a display of deep and
plaintive emotion.
"Arrrgggghhh....
oooooOOOOHHHH."
Ruth sensed that this
was the culmination of the girls' thorough and somewhat callous expert
extraction. The naked youngster was so wracked with emotion, that he reluctantly
and abjectly ejaculated into the beaker. Spurt, after spurt, splattered rapidly
against the inside of the glass beaker that Ruth was holding. Copious globules
of semen were being extorted from his young body in such a rapid fashion that
she was astonished.
Ruth could not
believe that an ejaculation could be so prolonged or tormented. His rapid
expulsion of thick and viscous wads of semen seemed interminable. Each emission
seemed to be absolutely torn from his body. Oh
my god, how could a sensitive young boy be able to withstand such a wicked
onslaught to his senses.
Gradually his
convulsions ceased and his head sagged to one side. One by one the girl's took
their hands away from his body. Gillian moved to the top of the couch and took
his head in her hands. She ignored his laboured gasps for breath as, wickedly,
she fastened her lips over his and thrust her tongue deep into his mouth.
Francis extricated
her hand from his bottom and nonchalantly squeezed his testes firmly with both
hands. Ruth only just managed to catch the extra globule of semen, as it was
seemingly squeezed from his body.
Gillian lifted her
head and watched the boy gasp desperately for breath to fill his lungs. She
looked at his face, seeing his extreme vulnerability. Her eyes glanced upwards
as Charlotte approached the boy. Charlotte was deeply moved by the boy's look
of adoration as she looked deep into his eyes. Her voice was soft and tender,
like that of a caring nurse or loving mother.
"Poor baby,
never mind Richard... it had to be done. Was it all a little too much for you,
don't worry we will take good care of your little penis and testes. What a good
boy you are. We are just going to let you rest for about half an hour or so.
Now just keep still while Miss Francis slips something into your pretty little
bottom... then you can rest. You won't feel a thing so just close your eyes and
relax."
She looked over to Francis who was holding one
of the large ball-ended prostate-stimulators in her slender hands.
Charlotte watched as
Francis leaned forward and slipped two of her fingers up into his bottom. She
heard him grunt just once as the ball-ended device was expertly pushed through
the ring of his sphincter.
Francis orientated
the device so that the ball was pressed firmly against his prostate gland and
waited while Gillian taped the base of the device to the juncture of his
thighs. Gillian used several pieces of surgical tape, until Francis nodded to
her, to confirm that the device was firmly in place. She gently withdrew her fingers
and plugged the wires into the control box and placed it upon the top of the
surgical trolley.
"There we are
sweetheart, now you just get some rest."
*
Rachael Zimmerman was
seated in front of her headmistress. The headmistress noted that the girl had
filled out beautifully during her final year. "Well Rachael home for the
Mid-Year Exeat in two weeks time. I suppose you will still be producing your
prodigious output for poor Miss Soames to mark and comment when you get
back!"
Rachael smiled, she knew
that she was incapable of not working and she knew her form teacher, Miss
Soames, would be overloaded.
"Now I have a
question to ask you, but I am finding myself reluctant to ask it. So Rachael I
am going to ask it, but you don't have to answer immediately. In fact I don't
want you to answer it, if the answer is no.
I have made you an
appointment to see me at four p.m. tomorrow. If the answer is no, I want you to
simply not attend. So, no pressure, OK?"
Rachael nodded and
Miss Hartman settled back in her chair and put her hands on her desk.
"You are aware
of the Extraction Program, correct?"
Rachael nodded.
"You know that
your younger brother, Colin, is being made to ejaculate his semen at least once
a day, correct?"
"Yes."
"You know that
Francis Chambers is his prime extractor, along with various other girls as they
train for it."
"Yes I know
something of the rotation and the volunteer induction."
"Now, tell me
how well you get on with your brother."
Rachael smiled,
somewhat ruefully. "Well I used to think he was a real... can I say it...
pain. But he seems to have grown up in to a decent boy. So although I don't mix
with him, I can tolerate him... hum... I think."
"Are you aware
that your brother was thoroughly spanked for masturbating?"
"To tell the
truth, I did hear that Miss Webster spanked him, but I did not know the
reason." Rachael pushed her wire-framed glasses further up her pretty nose
as she sat upright in her chair.
Victoria Hartman
smiled. She knew that when Rachael buried herself in her work, she was
oblivious to all else.
"Well Rachael,
the Extraction Program was instigated because of Colin and our concerns about
other boys like him that had just reached puberty."
Rachael did not
comment. Victoria smiled knowing that there was no question and for that reason
Rachael would not answer. Although she had been perhaps hoping for a comment
from the pretty girl.
"Well Colin was
the reason for the Program's instigation. There are many medical and social
reasons why we do not allow the boys to masturbate, so they have to suffer the
indignity of forced extraction.
They have all been
counselled, and on the whole they have all responded well. But the long
vacation is causing real problems. I spoke to your mother, who you know is a
particularly good friend of mine. She is launching her company on the Stock
Market and so will be the busiest she has ever been until she finally let's go
of the reins. Which will be more or less be the same time that you all return
to school. So Rachael you will see very little of her during the long Exeat.
"She has told
me. I will be fine on my own."
Victoria smiled.
"Yes I am sure you will."
Victoria looked at
the very pretty, but modestly dressed girl and braced herself to ask the
question. She knew that Rachael would not react well to euphemisms or any more
procrastination.
"Rachael, I want
you to extract your brother's semen at least once a day during the entire
vacation. I have been told that on most days, certainly over the past few
weeks. He has had to have his semen extracted twice. I want you to monitor him
and his erections and make absolutely sure that he continues to work hard and
does not auto-masturbate. So the regime would most likely be twice a day. There
must be no exceptions to this regime." Victoria Hartman took a deep breath
and continued as there had been complete silence from Rachael.
"Your mother
asked me for every detail of our program and specifically how the extractions
are carried out. I explained to her, the procedure that every extractor must
adhere to. We have the boy lay upon his bed dressed only his pyjama bottoms.
That is obviously after he has toileted and showered.
After the removal of
his pyjama bottoms, his legs are placed in stirrups so that his bottom is
completely accessible. The boy's rectum is penetrated by hand through his
sphincter and both his prostate gland and penis are manipulated and stimulated
simultaneously.
The extractor is
allowed to fasten his hands, arms, ankles and thighs, to facilitate easier
extraction from a recalcitrant boy.
A punishment paddle
may be applied to the boy's bared buttocks by the extractor, should it be
necessary.
The severity of the
punishment is decided by the extractor. It is a difficult job for one person,
but manageable, especially after greater co-operation is received, usually
after a thorough spanking.
That is the gist of
it, although there are many subtle variations that the extractor may introduce
if she finds it easier and more effective. Hence each extractor will develop
her own style.
I do not want an
answer straight away Rachael, hence your appointment with me tomorrow. However
I do want you to have a thorough talk with both Charlotte Browne and Francis
Chambers. I know that Francis is very young, but Charlotte will tell you how
experienced and effective she is at extraction.
Your mother is
cognizant of all of this. I also told her of our arrangements here at the
academy for new equipment specifically for our extraction program.
She knows that we are installing automated
beds and examination couches during the summer months. They will make the
extractions much simpler for a single extractor and facilitate a more thorough
extraction for the usual team of three.
Your mother,
immediately decided to install suitable equipment in her own home, from a list
that we provided. She is conscious of the fact that there will be many
vacations and that the equipment will serve through all of these as well as
your brother's university years. She does not want Colin to ever indulge in
clandestine masturbation in your home or anywhere else.
She is most adamant
that the boy will never be allowed to masturbate again. She is fully informed
of the attendant problems auto masturbation can cause. I will touch upon some
of them. These problems are manifold, such as a malformed penis, disease from
poor hygiene and skin irritations caused by excessive manipulation of the penis
without lubricant or skill.
The worst aspects
are, the psychological trauma of pursuing an embarrassing clandestine activity
and embarking on habitual masturbation to the detriment of academic work. It is
particularly damaging to the development social skills... and normal sexual
relations when a boy becomes old enough to have a partner.
I know you are a
dedicated and hard-working girl, Rachael. But I do require you to see Charlotte
immediately, she knows you will be coming to her study. She will arrange the
meeting with Francis Chambers.
One further thing and
this is very important. Your mother knows how successful you are here. She will
never mention the request that I have made of you if you are to turn it down.
She is quite
confident of being able to provide a team of suitable personnel to carry out
this duty. She certainly has no hesitation in financially managing the problem
to best effect... and she does not want you to have any worries about your
brother.
She has told me that
she will elect a person - someone to manage the boy. Someone that she has known
very well - and for a long time, to oversee the entire project and report any
problems directly to her. Oh by the way, as an extractor you would be required
to wear a clinicians tunic that Miss Webster has designed. Each girl is
provided with eight of tunics, so that their laundry is not a problem.
Thank you for
listening to me Rachael. I will know your reply tomorrow. Now before you go, do
you have any questions?"
Victoria looked at
the girl as she pondered. She thought that the extractors tunic would
really transform her. Her school
pullover, worn loosely beneath her blazer, did not let anyone see the neat and
trim figure that Victoria knew she must possess. She knew that her legs were
particularly fine. She had seen her in her running shorts on more than one
occasion. However Victoria had never seen beneath the baggy sweaters and
pullovers that Rachael habitually wore. But Charlotte had told her that she
looked quite beautiful, when she had seen her once, showering in the main
showers after a run.
As Victoria waited
with absolute patience. She thought that if Rachael was to take it on, it would
transform her. Certainly it would take care of her excessive modesty.
Suddenly Rachael
looked towards Miss Hartman and spoke. "No, Miss Hartman, thank you."
Rachael stood up and smiled politely to Miss Hartman, before she exited through
the oak door of the study.
Victoria had to
stifle a giggle. 'No' What, did she
mean? No, I don't want to do it, or no, I do not have any questions?
Oh well we will see
tomorrow. I hope Charlotte has more communication with her than I demonstrated.
It was seven a.m. as
Rachael entered the boy's bedroom. Upon the bed, but under the covers was a
young boy. Rachael walked up to the bed-head and looked down at his blushing
face through her wire framed glasses. She held a clipboard against her chest.
The pure white tunic that she wore, showed more of her figure than she was yet
comfortable with.
The hem was short and
showed most of her firm thighs. The tunic was tightly waisted and only flared
outwards immediately under her breasts. Like all of the extractors tunics, her
breasts seemed to be prominently displayed through deliberate design and
Charlotte had insisted that she must not wear her bra or panties. She decided
to brave it, and held the clipboard under her arm as she looked down at the
blushing face.
"Are you Jim
Murphy?" Rachael knew the boy, through his academic achievement, but
thought that this approach would be more effective. As she was a school
prefect, she knew that the boy would know her name and her authority within the
academy.
"Oh... er... Yes
Miss er... Zimmerman.
The boy seemed to be
embarrassed to the extreme. Perhaps this will be less traumatic than I had
envisaged, she thought, as she turned to put the clipboard upon his set of
drawers.
"I understand
Jim that your extractors leave a paddle in this bedroom. Where is it,
Jim?"
Jim looked not only
looked embarrassed but seemed to be in absolutely shocked over her request.
"Oh please... oh
please Miss. I have never been naughty or made a fuss oh please Miss."
Rachael looked at him
and spoke clearly and simply.
"I did not ask
how you behave."
Jim blushed
profusely.
"Oh... please
Miss... hum... it is in the top drawer of the chest.
"Thank you,
Jim."
Rachael opened the
drawer and took out the paddle. She held it in her hands for a moment and felt
the weight of it. Do they really get
paddled with this upon their bare bottoms. This paddle must really, really
sting!
She placed the paddle
alongside her clipboard and moved back to the bed. Without a word, she neatly
drew the covers back until they were folded in a neat and tidy oblong upon the
foot of the bed. She smoothed them over until they were perfectly flat, then
picked them up and placed them upon a wooden chest that was standing to the far
side of the room.
She returned to the
bed to see that the boy was bare apart from his pyjama bottoms. He had goose
bumps over his flesh and his lips were trembling. His face was a profusion of
redness. She could see him become even more agitated as she looked down at his
body. She suddenly had a realisation. She was going to undress a boy. Bare him
buck naked... and he would be helpless to stop her. She leaned over his hips
and delicately picked up the pyjama cords until the ends were laid to each side
of his body.
She pulled the ends
of the cord apart and delicately opened the single button at his waist. She
laid open the flaps of his pyjamas to each side of his hips and looked down at
his plump penis. It was lazily curled over his plump scrotum.
Rachael placed her
hands upon either side of his bared hips and gave him the one word instruction.
"Lift."
Jim nearly tried to
say something and then decided against it. He just managed to blush to a deeper
shade of red as he lifted his hips. His embarrassment was almost palpable.
Rachael slipped the bottoms down his legs to his ankles. She issued the same
word from her pretty lips.
"Lift"
The boy was trembling
as he lifted his ankles. She slipped the bottoms from his feet and diligently
folded them. She left the naked boy face upwards upon the bed as she took the
bottoms, now neatly folded, and placed them upon top of the bed covers. She
returned towards the bed and looked at his blushing face, before slowly moving
her head deliberately to look straight down at his naked genitalia.
She leaned over and
took the boy's penis in her hands. She could feel his body trembling as she
gently retracted the prepuce, slipping it further and further back until it
revealed the plump and soft flesh of the head. Jim, just looked at her in dumb
obedience as she examined his most embarrassing appendage. She could feel it
throb in her hands as she kept it there, almost in fascination. She watched it
as it became increasingly tumescent.
Suddenly she let go,
watching it slap against his belly like a thick, fat uncooked sausage. She
remained standing exactly where she was, examining in detail, his naked and
trembling body.
His flesh was soft,
almost feminine in some respects, she thought. The swelling of his hips, the
soft mounds of his chest, that looked more like a girl's immature breasts, than
those befitting a fourteen year old boy. His whole body was very much at odds
with the considerable girth of his penis or the swollen bulge of his scrotum.
She moved away to the
dresser, conscious of his eyes following her every move. She picked up the
paddle and held it across her hips as she spoke.
"Turn over Jim
and get up onto your knees. Spread each knee until it is on the very edge of
the bed and then go down and rest upon your shoulders. Your head and shoulders
must be flat on the bed with your face turned this way."
Jim trembled in
absolute anguish. His mouth opened to protest. Rachael raised her hand and
stopped him before he could begin.
"Every word you
speak! - Listen to me Jim. Every word you utter will be three extra strokes.
Every minute you waste will also be three extra strokes. Now, I advise you to
obey me!"
The boy was in
absolute turmoil. What had he done, how many strokes was he to get, even
without him protesting. He was going to be paddled and he had no idea why. He
looked at her pleadingly but managed to get his body on its side. His face was
a picture of anguish, disbelief and protested innocence. Miss Zimmerman stood
unrelentingly, placing her legs astride and watched him come to his decision.
He turned over, his
face hidden as he struggled to get his knees almost onto the very edge of the
bed. He struggled not only physically, but inwardly, as eventually he got into
the instructed position. He was nearly in tears as his face turned towards her
and he laid his blushing cheek upon the pillow. His arms were laid back on each
side of his body. He looked utterly defenceless as he she appraised him.
"Keep
still."
Again the terse
instruction as he felt her touch his bottom. He could not believe how soft and
gentle her hand was as it smoothed over his buttocks. Rachael felt completely
empowered as her delicate fingers embraced his flesh. She took her time,
enjoying her absolute authority to touch him at will. Round and round, her fingers
traced over his soft and plump, juvenile bottom.
He was trembling as
she reached beneath him. She carefully cradled his plump scrotum in her right
hand, feeling the swollen orbs move around inside the bulging sac as she lifted
and cradled them. She pushed her hand further underneath him and felt his
penis. It had not shrivelled, which she might have expected. Instead his penis
was pointing forward, stiff and erect. She let go of him.
She stood back and
quietly placed the paddle back upon the dresser top. She saw that the boy was
so distressed that he did not see her. She moved close to his hips and placed
her left hand upon the middle of his back.
The boy sobbed in
fright, probably, she thought, at his fear of the paddle. He trembled visibly
as she spoke.
"Your bottom is
far too soft for the paddle Jim. I am going to spank you with my hand. I want
you to say the number of the stroke and then thank me for it. Do you
understand. You will be allowed only one word, yes or no."
Jim’s bottom seemed
to quiver as he spoke. His voice trembled so much that it seemed to wail out of
his mouth... "Yesssss."
Rachael raised her
right hand and brought it down upon his quivering buttocks.
She heard his indrawn
breath and the words of subjugation. "One, Miss Zimmerman, thank
you."
Rachael could not
believe the thrill she felt.
The spank had given
her a strange feeling, one which was not at all what she had anticipated. What
she had wanted, was his absolute obedience. What she had got was an intense
stab of pleasure between her legs.
She raised her hand
again and brought it down upon the opposite cheek of his bare bottom.
"Slap."
Jim could not have
explained his own emotions as he felt the second slap embrace the right cheek
of his bottom. He only knew that it was a new and strange sensation, not at all
what he had anticipated feeling.
"Two, Miss
Zimmerman, thank you."
Rachael experienced
the same feeling again. Was it the slap of her hand, or was it the acquiescent
voice that had thanked her.
She raised her hand again
and looked at his plump buttocks. They were smooth, just like a young girl.
They were now marked with the imprint of her hand upon each cheek. She
continued his spanking, thrilling with each spank and with each word of thanks.
Yes, she thought...
it was the combination of both. Words and deeds. She quickened her pace and
spanked him steadily, while the boy, in the throes of his dilemma, diligently
counted and thanked her promptly.
It was on the
resounding ninth stroke, that she began to analyse the boy's reaction to her
and the spanking she was inflicting upon his bare bottom. She decided that as
soon as she had finished, she would examine the physicality that could not tell
a lie.
She reached the final
twelfth stroke and waited while he had thanked her for it.
She reached between
his legs, brushing her hand underneath his full and plump scrotum. She could
feel the swollen testes, encased and snug inside the distended sac. Her hand
purposefully moved forward until she could grasp his penis.
She thrilled as she
felt the thickened and throbbing flesh. He was fully aroused. His legs were
trembling from their wide stance, but apart from that she could see that his
face had lost its anguished expression. His eyes were closed and he seemed
strangely calm.
She reached beneath
his tummy with her left hand, searching for his penis. Simultaneously, she
let him go with her right hand... and
moved it back between his thighs until she had grasped his testicles firmly.
Her left hand had
quickly found his penis, and she gently wrapped her fingers around the velvety
flesh. She marvelled as she realised that the shaft of his penis was actually
bobbing up and down as it throbbed.
Without warning, she
gripped both his penis and his scrotum tightly. She heard him gasp, but his
penis had already given away his secrets to her. Instinctively she knew that
the evidence she had seen and felt, had betrayed his true nature. Perhaps, she
mused, a nature that he was completely unaware of.
Her voice was soft
and low as she spoke to him. It was her intuitive instinct that prompted her
words. "Whose little boy are you Jim?"
"Oh yours Miss
Zimmerman. Can I be yours, I promise to be good."
I thought so. I was absolutely right about you. How
delicious this is going to be.
Rachael felt another
sudden stab of pleasure and the carefree but intense desire to push her fingers
deep into his bottom in celebration. She shivered in delight at the knowledge
that, without a doubt, she would be doing exactly that in a few minutes time.
She let go of him and
placed the palm her left hand flat upon his back. She raised her right hand and
smacked him as hard as she could. She quickly stood back and watched him.
"Oh, thirteen
Miss Zimmerman, thank you." She could see his from his face that he was
calmly absorbing the sensation. He opened his eyes to look at her.
He dared to speak,
his naive senses compelling him to.
"May I say
something Miss Zimmerman."
Rachael stood with
her legs astride and her hands upon her hips. Her nipples felt hard and alive
against the soft material. She knew that they were erect. Her thighs and bare
pubis felt free of restraint. Her stance thrilled her as she saw that the boy
was wide eyed and looked at her with an adoring expression of supplication upon
his young face.
"Yes Jim, you
may."
"You are the
most lovely and most beautiful person I have ever seen. I love you Miss."
It was not Jim’s
astute brain that had made him utter those words - and neither was it Rachael's
as she replied.
"I can see that
you do Jim, I can see that you do."
She stroked the tips
of her fingers along his back and across his shoulder. Gently she touched them
to his cheek. Jim could hardly move his head and yet he managed to kiss her
fingers with his trembling lips.
"Right Jim you
will obey me implicitly. You will never question what I do to you. I want you
to know that, whatever I do to you will be for your own good, whether it seems
it or not." She examined him carefully before she spoke again.
"On your back,
legs stretched wide apart, hands beneath the pillow behind your head." She
didn't watch him, but moved towards the bathroom to stand in front of the sink.
She ran her hands under the cold tap until they were ice cold.
She dried them and
returned to the bed. The boy was laid as instructed, his penis was standing
straight up from his body and his face was blushing so much that she felt she
could have warmed her hands upon his cheeks.
She leaned over him
and looked into his eyes. His lips were trembling as he looked up at her in complete
abandonment. "Yes my boy, you will never, ever disobey me, will you
Jim?" She did not wait for an answer, but lowered her head and kissed him
softly on the lips.
As she stood upright,
the door opened and Charlotte appeared. She was quickly followed by Francis and
Miss Webster. Miss Webster was wheeling the medical trolley. It had already
been prepared with open jars of lubricant and the glass collection beaker.
Charlotte immediately
examined the boy. Her eyes missing nothing as she smiled at Rachael and then
moved to stand over Jim. You appear to be ready for your extraction Jim. Have
you been a good boy for Miss Zimmerman?
The boy blushed, his
lips trembling as he answered her. "Oh yes Miss Browne." His look of
guilt intrigued Charlotte. She stood back and watched as Francis and Miss
Webster handled the stirrups and the crossbar. It seemed only moments before
the boy's legs were firmly ensconced in the stirrups.
Miss Webster took the
boy's attention. "Jim, you may address my girls as Miss Charlotte, Miss
Rachael and Miss Francis. You are familiar with the routine so we had better
get those plump testicles of yours emptied. I want no fuss now as Miss Rachael
stretches and penetrates your bottom. It is time you experienced a full
penetration Jim, so I will be instructing Miss Rachael to acquire total access
to the inside of your bottom. You will obey her implicitly. Do I make myself
clear?"
Jim was so shamed
that his voice wavered as he replied. "I promise Miss Webster."
"Good boy, now
relax your bottom when she asks you to."
Rachael almost
giggled as she realised that no boy could possibly relax his sphincter,
especially when he knew that he was going to be impaled upon the fingers of a
dominant and authoritative young girl.
She took in the exciting
vision of this trembling and blushing fourteen-year-old boy. His flawless skin,
his embarrassed face, his almost feminine body, now laid before her, shamefully
naked. She was thrilled with the sight of him, now with his legs stretched wide
and high upon the bed for her enthralling delectation. How excruciatingly embarrassed must he feel? It must the most
incredible shaming experience ever. My God, what on earth have I been missing.
Charlotte spoke,
intriguing both Miss Webster and Francis as she looked at them in their
enticing white uniforms.
"I would like
Miss Webster and Miss Francis to handle the stimulation to his penis and
testicles, while Miss Rachael attends to his prostate gland. If you both would
position yourselves either side of his hips." She waited for their
compliance, seeing the look of curiosity in their faces.
She spoke softly to
Rachael. "Undo the bottom three buttons of your tunic so that you can lean
against the end of the bed with your legs spread wide, it will give you greater
access to his plump little bottom."
Rachael bent over and
undid the buttons. Suddenly realising that she had bared herself almost to her
bare pubis. She blushed as she looked at Charlotte who glibly assured her.
"Don't worry, that's absolutely perfect. Now lean your hips against the
mattress... oh you will have to spread your legs a little further to get your
hips lower."
Rachael's cheeks were
pink as she finally got into the position that Charlotte had instructed.
"That's perfect
Rachael," she whispered as she stood next to her. Now lean your elbows on
the bed while I hand you the jar of lubricant. Moments later, Rachael had both
hands lubricated up to the wrists.
She whispered softly
in her ear. "Right Rachael, don't forget to talk to the boy, give him encouragement
and get him breathing slowly and deeply.
Off you go!"
Rachael looked at the
tiny rosebud of his sphincter. Am I going
to be able to stretch that to get at his prostate? Poor baby, you are in for a
shock!
Rachael found that
her voice was firm and clear as she spoke to the boy. "Deep breaths please Jim. I want you to be a good little
boy for me. Come along, breathe in... breathe out... nice and deeply... just
relax for me."
To her surprise his
little orifice did seem to relax. She felt him tremble as she began to smear
the lubricant around his sphincter. His bottom trembled, but he did not cry
out, which Rachael had expected when she had first placed her hands upon him.
Her voice softened as she gently probed the opening, each searching finger
pressing more firmly against the recoiling and pulsing ring of rubbery muscle.
"There we are
Jim, just relax for me. Make your big breaths sweetheart, just for me. I know
you can do it." Miss Webster and Miss Francis looked into his face. They
were surprised at his concentrated look as he breathed deeply and tried to
relax his bottom.
It was Rachael's most
recent epiphany as suddenly his sphincter gave way to her probing fingers. Not
one, but two fingers slid upwards into his bottom. She pushed slowly but firmly
as the knuckles slipped through the opening. The boy had gasped but not cried
out. She heard his deep breathing return as she explored within him. She was
aware that her fingers were ideal for his penetration, sublimely long and
slender. She rotated her hand and curled the index and middle finger against
where she knew the prostate gland should be.
"Is that your
secret little place Jim. Tell me sweetheart." She prodded carefully,
feeling his bottom reluctantly jerk with sensation.
"Oooooh... yesssss,
Miss Rachael... hooooo, yes... it.is." Rachael realised that she could
feel the rounded protrusion of the gland. It was more clearly defined than she
had thought it would be.
"Good boy. Now
just relax for me I will be very gentle with you." She was surprised to
feel Charlotte's hand upon hers, as more lubricant was smeared upon her
fingers.
Rachael withdrew her
two fingers from his bottom, until only the tips remained inside him. She
extended her ring finger and closed it against the other two. Gradually she
inserted all three twisting them gently as she dilated the ring of muscle. She
could feel the boy's body respond with a deep shudder.
"There we are
sweetie, relax and breathe for me. I won't hurt you, Darling."
Jim sighed, and
obediently he began to breathe even more deeply.
Rachael realised that
the sphincter had relaxed a little. Without any warning to the young boy, she
slipped her little finger into the entrance. She now knew, that with four
fingers firmly inside him, that it was a matter of taking her time and
gradually stretching him until the knuckles of her hand met with his darling
little rosebud.
God what am I thinking... his Darling little rosebud?
Well it is cute and very timid, recoiling and trembling every time I touch it!
Rachael suddenly felt
Charlotte press her body close to hers as she smeared lubricant over the back
of her hand and then more over the palm. She whispered to her. "Perfect
Rachael, we have plenty of time. He hasn't been penetrated this deeply before
so carry on as you are doing. You are a natural."
Rachael was pleased
with her words and felt Charlotte stroke her hand down her back. She suddenly
shivered as Charlotte's hand proceeded much further, until Rachael felt the
impudent hand stroking her bottom. God, she thought, I know I am wet already,
please don't make it any worse.
Rachael shivered but
concentrated on her task. The boy began to moan as her hand delved deeper. She
kept her fingers away from the prostate gland until she felt that she was in
the perfect position. She saw Francis nonchalantly cup his testicles and lift
them up.
Rachael spoke to him
endearingly. "There we are Jim, my little sweetie. All done with the
stretching. Now we are going to get you milked, so just you relax and be a good
boy for Miss Francis and Miss Webster.
She saw her pastoral
tutor smile at her and nod her head in approval, as suddenly, she wrapped her
fingers around the shaft of the boy's straining penis. The boy quaked as his
penis was comprehensively squeezed within Miss Webster's hand.
Rachael, but a few
moments later, felt Charlotte's hand impudently squeeze the cheeks of her
bottom and heard her whisper. "Really slowly and gently at first. If you
watch Miss Francis she will tell you when to apply pressure. Remember what I
told you last night. Show no mercy. Firm and fast... as fast as you can."
Rachael shivered, not
with the thought of what she must do... but with the feel of Charlotte's
fingers as they slipped under the hem of her tunic and up between her widely
spread legs. Rachael could not believe it as Charlotte cupped her hand firmly
and sensuously over her pubic mound.
She was unable to
protest as Miss Webster spoke. "Right Jim, no holding back now. I want a
thorough ejaculation from you." Rachael felt the boy shudder as Miss
Webster deftly stretched the boy's foreskin downwards until his penis was held
rigidly upright and bared fully. She watched as Francis, almost cruelly stroked
her hand down upon the bared timid flesh of the head which, was being offered fully
exposed by Miss Webster's firm grip upon the base of the shaft. Francis let go
of his testicles, and Rachael saw her flatten the palm of her hand. She
immediately began to rotate it against the very tip of his penis.
Rachael felt the boy
shudder, his hips wriggling wildly with the sensation. A low husky voice
whispered in her ear. "Off you go Rachael."
Rachael tried to
ignore Charlotte's hand as it began to move over the inflamed lips of her
vulva. She hooked all four fingers over the boy's prostate gland. She felt his
body buck immediately. His body began to quiver with the intense onslaught to
his timid senses.
"Ooooohhhh...
hooooohoo...ah... aH."
It was obvious that
he was quite unprepared for the depths of cruel sensation that the girls were
deftly extracting from his young body.
Rachael did not know where her calm clear
voice came from. She was immersed in an overwhelming sensation of her own and
yet she managed to speak.
"Come along Jim,
give it your best effort. It is all for your own good. I'll just squeeze you
inside your little bottom, shall I? Just to make sure that you are properly
milked. There we are sweetheart, just for me Darling."
She dare not speak
again as suddenly and cheekily Charlotte found her clitoris and moved her
fingers over it in a wave. Each finger brushing over it... and then back again.
She could not close her legs or protest in front of Miss Webster. She gritted
her teeth as Charlotte stimulated her to an inevitable orgasm.
Rachael tried to
concentrate and began to apply her fingers more firmly. Every movement of the
boy's body told her exactly how well she was doing. She speeded up her fingers
to coincide with Francis, whose hands were rapidly moving up and down the
totally bared head of his penis.
"Hoooo... ohhhHHH."
The boy let out a
plaintive wail as Rachael's fingers speeded up to match those of Francis. She
firmed her ministrations until she thought the boy could take no more.
His gasps and groans
filled the room with anguished sounds. Suddenly Rachael felt his sphincter
spasm against her hand as the boy's body became rigid.
She found that
reluctantly, she was also in the strict and hopefully clandestine raptures of
her own orgasm.
It was like a dream
to Rachael as she flurried and plied her fingers firmly against the soft mound
of his prostate gland. Her hands seemingly controlled by Charlottes flurry of
fingers over her clitoris. She knew that her face was flushed as she climaxed.
The feeling overwhelming her until she could bear it no longer. She pressed her
pubis against the bed, stifling Charlotte's impudent fingers.
She concentrated upon
the boy as Charlotte, with impeccable timing, slipped her hand from beneath her
legs and her tunic and calmly held the beaker over the boy's penis.
He seemed to snort
and grunt, his body wracked with emotion. Rachael found her voice. She felt it
was important to her. "Well done Jim. Now I want nice big spurts from you.
Show the pretty girls what you can do. There what a clever boy you are. Come
along now."
She pressed all four fingers firmly against
the gland. Time and time again she repeated the movement. There was no clue,
other than rapid expulsion of globule after globule of semen, for her to judge
her efforts. Francis's fist flew over the flesh of his penis as Charlotte took
his testicles in her hand and squeezed them firmly.
The boy wailed and
protested. "Oooooohhh pleeeease... it is too sensitive. I c'cant stand it
anymore of it... please Miss... oh pleeeease Miss Rachael.
His penis continued
pumping but no more semen was ejected. Miss Webster recognized his absolute
trauma and slowly raised her hand upwards over the shaft of his penis.
Effectively she stilled Francis's rapid manipulation.
Rachael stilled her
hand too. She could see that the sides of the jar had been liberally coated
with the boy's emission. His body was stiff and his buttocks were raised from
the bed. Rachael watched as suddenly his whole body slackened. He collapsed on the bed and his head rolled to
the side.
Miss Webster ran her
hand down his cheek, but there was no response. She looked over to Rachael.
"Well done Rachael, you may withdraw your fingers now. He has fainted.
Don't worry, lots of the boys do when we make them ejaculate so much."
Charlotte held the
glass in front of Rachael. She could now see the full results of his emission
as the semen drained down from the sides of the glass, revealing the true
extent of his copious donation.
Rachael could not
believe how liberated she felt. She had been made to realise just how pleasurable
her authority was. She knew she could not wait to subjugate Jim again. He was a
darling boy and his love and acquiescence thrilled her more than she thought
possible.
As the girls moved to
dispense with the stirrups, Rachael caught Charlotte's eye. She beckoned her
forward and whispered in her ear. "You may think you have got away with
that. But as soon as we get an extraction on our own..." she flicked her
eyes across towards Miss Webster. "I am going to make you climax so hard,
that your pretty little body is going to convulse, just like little Jim."
Charlotte grinned as they both watched Francis apply a wet sponge to the boy's
genitals.
Later as she walked
through the corridors towards Miss Hartman's office. Rachael knew that she had
realised an ambition that she truly never knew that she had. She remembered
back to the prurience that she had felt when she had taken Colin's rectal
temperature every hour for two whole days when he was younger. How she had made
him leave his pyjamas off and turn on his back while she had had him raise his
own legs in subjugation. Maybe that was still in my subconscious mind, if I was
like that then, then why not now?
As Rachael was seated
in front of Miss Hartman, she voiced her demands in return for her accepting
her previous request. Her voice was clear and confident.
"I have some
stipulations which should not be too onerous. Everyone involved has accepted my
suggestions and has agreed. I want Francis Chambers, Charlotte Browne, Miss
Webster, Judith Nixon, Gillian Sanders and Nurse Summers. I know it seems a lot
of people. But if you will hear me out. Colin is going to be mortified. He will
not co-operate until he realises that it is futile to resist me. He will
eventually be angry with me, when he realises that I will be in charge of him
over the vacation and that I will be milking him, daily.
I know that the only
way that he will be subdued and eventually acquiesce to my handling of him,
will be after he has been thoroughly spanked by me. It will be a long drawn out
punishment until I get a proper response. I know that he will eventually,
properly submit to my authority. Once he has, he will no longer be a problem
for me.
I have talked with
Francis Chambers and know that Francis was successful in spanking her brother
until he realised that he had been wrong. I am the older sister and as such
have some advantage, but he is going to have to be spanked... and unfortunately
it has to be me that applies the paddle to his bare bottom. I am sure you see
that. And I know that you will, on consideration, give your permission.
I will not be on my
own during the vacation, Charlotte suggested that I ask Judith Nixon to stay at
my house. She has accepted. Charlotte tells me that she has become most expert
in extracting semen from the boys on the program. I am also going to ask my
mother to get one other person. I don't know who she had in mind, but I am sure
she will make some arrangement for me.
There is one other
thing I want to befriend Jim Murphy. He is an extremely bright boy and I think
that I could benefit him academically and socially. He is quite soft and
feminine in his bodily appearance, and I know he would not be everyone's idea
of a boyfriend. I like him just like he is. He seems to have subjugated himself
to me. I think with my protection and his reliance upon me, it will work out in
both of our favours.
I spanked his bare
bottom with my hand this morning and I put my hand in his bottom and
manipulated his prostate, while Miss Webster and Francis coaxed his penis until
he ejaculated. I intend to do it again,
many times. He just seemed embarrassed more than hurt when I spanked him. I
intend to be very responsible and careful about his infatuation for me and see
where it leads. I like him and would not lead his emotions down the wrong path.
But I suspect that his submissive thoughts were already there, although perhaps
hidden away. May I have you permission for all of my requests?"
Miss Hartman had
already talked in depth to Charlotte Browne and knew exactly what the girl was
talking about. She wholeheartedly agreed with everything the girl had asked.
"Yes Rachael
everything. I wish you and Colin well. It will be hard beating your brother
with a paddle. But I know that you will do it knowing it is what is best for
him. Thank you for coming to see me and for your candour. I am equally at ease
about your liaison with Jim Murphy, who I have often felt yearned towards a
mentor. I was hoping that it would be a female, rather than another boy. Now to
practicalities. I have already told house-keeping about you. They have your
measurements and your tunics will be ready by the end of the week.
Rachael smiled at
Miss Hartman and left without another word. That was something else that she
was going to have to settle with naughty tattle-tale Miss Charlotte.
Rachael walked down
the corridor and immediately saw Jim Murphy. He seemed to be waiting for her.
That was not something she wanted. She looked at her watch as she walked up to
him. "What are you doing here Master Murphy? It is only ten minutes before
your 'end of term tests'. Well come along boy answer me."
She watched his
pretty face blush, and his long eyelashes close upon his cheeks.
"Erm... ah... oh. I just thought I might
see you, Miss Rachael." The boy blushed to a deeper red almost
immediately. Rachael stood with her legs apart and looked at him.
"You are a
foolish young boy. You will address me as Miss Zimmerman... not as Miss Rachael, that was merely for your
extraction this morning. I will ask Miss Petty for your results. If they are
below ninety-eight percent, I shall send you to the headmistress for a caning,
not just a paddling. You will report to my study in the Prefect's Quarters at
seven pm. this evening. You will not be late. Now go to your class, Jim."
Rachael smiled. She
knew that Jim would not fall below the high figure she had stipulated. He was
bright and she knew that he, like herself, would read every question through
three times before he even thought about answering any of them. Now she needed to
see Charlotte immediately. Her own meagre wardrobe would no longer be suffice.
Why, she asked herself, did she not go shopping at least once in the many times
that her mother had begged her to go. She now needed Charlotte's advice as well
as a school uniform that, for once, barely conformed to the rules of decency.
It was almost time
for Jim’s appearance. She had but twenty minutes before the boy was due. She
looked at herself in full length mirror. She would not have recognised herself
from the girl who had walked the corridors earlier. The pure white shirt was
severe and exciting. Her breasts were bare beneath the fine cotton, and the shirt was so sheer that she could make
out the dark aureoles of her nipples. Her navy skirt was short and pleated to allow
for plenty of movement. Her legs were bare and wonderfully, had still
maintained their light tan.
The most exciting
aspects of her appearance were the shoes, hair and makeup.
Her hair was drawn
back severely. It shone with the luxurious conditioner that Charlotte had
applied to her hair as she sat naked in Charlotte's own bathtub.
Charlotte had brushed
her hair to a shine and pinned it at the back of her head. Then she had applied
her makeup, lightly but intuitively, accenting her blue/grey eyes with
eye-shadow and painting her lips a severe red. A deep red that only a few girls
could wear with such a devastating effect. Rachael knew that it definitely
suited her new persona. The shoes were the highest, most slender heels that she
had ever seen, although, she found, she was able to walk quite quickly with
them as she returned to her own prefect's study.
Her severe
authoritarian look was amplified by the navy tie that hung from the
uniform-style collar of her shirt. Very much more Gestapo than schoolgirl, she
thought wickedly. God the boy will expire
from fright when he sees me.
She realised that she
had forgotten something. She went to her wardrobe and retrieved the light
wooden paddle. It was so light, that she assumed that it had been made for a
wall decoration, rather than for serious business. This should suit that soft
bottom, she thought, as she held it across her hips. She looked in the mirror
once more, and was very satisfied with the apparition she saw. The paddle was
finished in a shiny black lacquer, that just looked so painful and cruel. She
held it loosely between her long delicate fingers.
She walked to her
bureau and picked up the internal telephone. She ran her fingers down the
numbers pinned to the cork board in front of her and then dialled.
"Oh Miss Petty,
sorry to trouble you, but I wondered if you had marked Jim Murphy's test
yet?" Miss Petty's voice was friendly as soon as she recognised the voice
of her hard-working student.
"Oh yes Rachael,
one hundred percent, although, I might knock a couple of points off, for him
not showing his workings on two simpler questions. Mind you, I could add them
back on just as easily, as he finished in fifty minutes. It was a two-hour
exam."
"Oh thank you
Miss Petty, I just wanted to make sure that his extraction this morning was
having the desired effect."
"Nothing to
worry about with his exam today. It was exemplary."
"Thank you Miss
Petty."
Good, she thought. I
might have focussed his mind rather than the other way round. I will certainly
monitor him until the end of term, just to make sure. If I am going to enjoy
him, I will have to make sure that he excels.
Jim was prompt. His
knock was firm, but brief. Rachael did not want to move from her position,
standing as she was, legs astride, back upright and the wicked-looking paddle
held across her hips.
"Come Master
Murphy." She knew the term would make him feel younger still, as it was
only used to address young boys... and usually when they were in trouble at
school. The door handle turned, but the door opened very slowly and his head
peered around it tentatively. Rachael was expecting as much. He was timid at
the best of times. But he knew that he was in trouble and his entrance showed
it. His head looked down at the floor.
"Close the door behind you."
Her last command was
at the same moment that he saw the black paddle. He managed to close the door
but his breathing was more like a series of gasps. He had not as yet, looked
upwards. The paddle being at the top periphery of his vision.
"For goodness
sake raise your head boy, I am not going to chop it off."
Jim looked up, aghast
at the vision in front of him. "Oh Miss Zimmerman." were the only
words he seemed to be able to manage. Jim suddenly blushed and his vision
blurred.
She looks just like my beautiful Snow Queen!
His childhood dreams.
Quite naive, but still with a budding sexuality. When he had wondered whether
no-one else but him, thought as he did. The heroine was always pretty, but was
not exotic or at all intriguing to Jim. Whereas the Snow Queen, was always
beautiful and perfect to his eyes. Those high cheekbones, those startling eyes
and clinging dresses that showed her perfect figure. He had spent hours looking
at them in his childhood books, even now, he kept them in his locker, never to
lose them.
Timid and frightened,
he was now standing before her... the most beautiful Evil Snow Queen. The
epitome of his dreams, now manifest in the flesh. The most wonderful
apparition! Standing aloof and severe, with a wicked black paddle held
menacingly across her hips.
Jim was in awe of
her, and his body was tingling with fear and excitement. "Oh Miss."
He wanted to get down on his knees, and yet he stood before her, his lips
trembling and his eyes glistening with emotion.
Rachael could see
that the boy was in turmoil, and knew that the way she looked, had shocked him
to the core. She remained as she was, looking at him coldly.
"You have been a
very naughty boy Jim and you must be punished."
"Yes Miss, I
know"
"...as well as
loitering in the corridors for me, you failed to show the workings in your
maths paper."
"Was that lack
of concentration? Thinking of other things perhaps?" Rachael's voice was
clear and calm, whereas Jim’s was timid and hesitant.
"Oh no Miss, I
wanted to do well for you. The workings I missed, were so simple that I didn't
need to write them down."
"What are the
rules, Jim?"
"To write them
down Miss Zimmerman."
"Well instead of
writing them down, you will be taking them down. You know the procedure for a
spanking. Hurry up. I have better things to do than wait for you to take your
clothes off."
Jim suddenly blanched
showing fright above his embarrassment.
"Everything
Miss."
"Of course boy,
now hurry up."
Jim blushed, turning
from white to red in an instance. He began to undo his clothes.
"Everything
apart from your underpants. I hope you have showered."
Jim stopped
undressing as he answered her. "Oh Yes Miss, just now."
"Well take them
off."
Jim was wearing his
full school uniform and he struggled as he tried to hurry.
"Put your
clothes neatly on my settee. I don't want you looking like a hobo, when you get
dressed after your spanking."
Jim’s face was now a
series of blushes. While he was busy she moved to her hard backed chair and
sat, making the most of her seated position with both her legs placed together
and angled gracefully and modestly to one side. Eventually he folded his
clothes and laid them on Rachael's sofa. He was dressed in tight, white
underpants. His body looked smooth and delicious, she thought. Just a hint of
plumpness on his chest and his hips. His nipples also had more of the look of a
young girl. Really the most non-threatening boy she had ever seen.
"Come and stand
in front of me, with your hands upon your head."
Jim shuffled rather
than walked to stand in front of her.
"Closer boy, how
am I supposed to take your pants down if you are that far away? Move forward
until you are touching my knees."
She placed the paddle
on the floor beside her and took hold of his hips. His body was trembling and
he seemed near to tears. With a delicious frisson of anticipation, she slipped her fingers beneath
the elastic waist and pulled them down briskly. Delighting that his penis was
not erect.
"I am pleased to
see that my extraction this morning has had a beneficial effect."
Jim blushed
immediately. And Rachael was delighted to see, that his substantial penis had
swelled just a little at being made to stand naked in front of her.
"Step out of
them and come around to my side." Jim knew which side to stand. His bare
toes almost touching the paddle as he waited. She placed her hand upon the soft
cheeks of his bottom and pulled him forward. She swiped her short dress away
from her legs. The pleated material swishing sexily as she bared her firm
thighs.
Jim was blushing
mightily, with the anguished, but exciting thought, that his naked body would
soon be laid across her bare legs. He shivered and seemed to tumble forward.
Rachael managed his body easily. Her legs, now in front of her, parting just
enough to accommodate his genitals. She pushed his head down, as if in disgust
at his nakedness. In fact nothing could have been further from the truth.
With a thrill at this
reverent moment, Rachael placed her right hand softly upon his naked bottom.
She stroked the cheeks, feeling his soft, plump flesh. It was flawless and
beautifully smooth to her touch. What a shame to mark it, but what a delight to
do it.
"What do naughty
boy's get Jim?"
His voice was hoarse
with emotion as his head hung between his arms, his hands flat against the
floor.
"A spanking
Miss."
Rachael slipped her
fingers between the cheeks of his bottom.
"Ahhh...
oh!"
He gasped as she
pulled the flesh apart and peered at his sphincter. "Well I can see that I
was very gentle with your little bottom button this morning. It looks all
squidgy and tight now Jim." She pressed her fingers against it, feeling
him squirm in embarrassment. Did she feel a movement between her thighs. She
wanted to avoid that if she could. She picked up the paddle and quickly put her
left hand around his waist, pulling his body tightly against her.
Without warning she
delivered the first stroke firmly across both cheeks.
"Smack!"
"Hooo..
oooh." His body bucked at the shock. And then she heard the magic words,
spoken from the trembling lips of the young boy.
"One Miss
Zimmerman, thank you."
She wanted to kiss
his darling bottom. Instead she raised the paddle. She knew it was light, but
it was so easy to apply and did not seem to have made his bottom any more red
than her hand. But the sound it made was a delight and she had felt a subtle
tingle between her legs.
"Smack!"
"Two Miss
Zimmerman, thank you."
"Smack!"
"Three Miss
Zimmerman, thank you."
"Smack!"
"Four Miss
Zimmerman, thank you."
At last she felt it,
not timidly, but almost bursting to life between her thighs. I think I may be
right she thought as she raised the paddle.
"Smack!"
"Five, Miss
Zimmerman, thank you." There was a nuance of his voice cracking as he
spoke. Could he really be feeling this. She looked at his bottom. The flesh was
red, but with no other signs of injury.
"Smack!"
"OH... Six Miss
Zimmerman, thank you."
"Smack!"
"Ah...ooohhh.
Seven Miss Zimmerman, thank you."
"You may stop
counting now, Jim. I need you to concentrate on your wrongdoing."
Suddenly there was a
rapid acceleration of the paddle, the strokes firmer and more focussed upon one
area of his plump quivering cheeks.
"Smack...
Smack... Smack... Smack... Smack... Smack... Smack... Smack... Smack... Smack...
Smack.. Smack... Smack." The spanks and rained down upon his bottom, hard
and fast. Rachael felt her own sexual excitement, as a delicious shiver ran
through her body.
"Oooooohhhh...
pleeeease Misss."
She paused for a
moment. She could feel his penis throbbing hugely between her legs. He was
obviously fully erect and perhaps only moments away from ejaculation. How could
he be like that? She knew that he was really in pain, his body was trembling
from a surfeit of it. His soft flesh was so easy to punish severely and Rachael
felt sure that she had done just that.
"Stand up Jim
and put your hands upon your head." She almost lifted him from her knees.
He obediently stood with his hands upon his head, but his thighs were squirming
as he tried to hide his throbbing erection.
"Come along
stand in front of me... no, no closer than that. Spread your legs and stand
upright, I won't have you squirming in front of me." She leaned forward
and put her hands upon his hips. and drew him forward until his legs were
almost at either side of her knees. She adjusted her skirt but left her most of
her thighs showing.
"Now tell me
Jim, what is the meaning of this?" She lifted her hand gracefully and
placed her fingers delicately against his penis. Her fingertips were barely
touching his flesh. His face was streaming with tears, but his penis was still
throbbing visibly.
"Well Jim, tell
me?"
His words came in a
rush and Rachael knew that she would not hear any evasion to her questions. He
was emotionally taut and let his words tumble out.
"Oh Miss."
he was crying as he spoke. "It is because you are so beautiful and you
have given me a spanking over your knees. It is so wonderful that you have
taken the time to spank me... Oh Miss, you are my Snow Queen, I mean so ah...
aloof and you're so beautiful... and loving at the same time. I can't... oh I
can't explain... but please let me be your naughty boy... oh really I will work
so hard... you might like... me. Oh and spank me... if I get even the slightest
bit wrong. I c'could work harder... I know I could... but you could still erm
spank me. Please Miss Zimmerman. Can I be your little boy... forever
Miss."
Rachael smiled at
him. "Come with me Jim, I am going to attend to you. Come along. You are a
very naughty boy... just look at this." She dared to flick her fingers
against the shaft of his penis, hoping that his arousal would not culminate in
his ejaculation... certainly not yet. She moved him back and stood up.
Instinctively she took him by the ear into her bathroom. "Now bend over
the edge of the bath and grasp the far side. Spread your legs until they hurt.
Got it?"
She fetched the
paddle and examined his position, it was just as she had requested. His penis
was erect and straight over the bath. His thighs were shivering with his
awkward stance.
She stroked her hand
down his back, gently and softly she both spoke to him and stroked him.
"Be brave Jim."
She started paddling
him, hard and fast, until his body quaked with emotion. She stroked her hand
over his wet and reddened cheek. "I'm sorry Jim it is not over yet."
Deliciously she gave him twelve hard spanks. His bottom was thoroughly red and
his buttocks shivered with the pain.
"You will always
do my bidding Jim. Keep quiet and be brave."
She delivered the
final salvo of twelve rapid spanks and then placed her hand on the small of his
back, pushing him down. "Stay still and stay there."
Jim’s tears were
still flowing as she greased her hand with body lotion. She turned back from
her bathroom dresser and looked at his gamine form. Quickly she smacked his
bottom with her left hand as she slipped her right hand between his quivering
and widely spread buttocks.
Deftly she penetrated
him with two well lubricated fingers. No warning, no extra preparation. He
gasped and cried out at the intense and unexpected intrusion rapidly entering
up into his plump bottom. She felt a shiver of delight run through her, as she
turned her hand downwards. He cried out to her as she pushed firmly, until her
fingers were hooked and accurately placed upon the absolute centre of his
prostate gland. She reached around him and grasped his penis.
She stimulated his
erect shaft, both firmly and quickly.
Suddenly her fingers bared the head fully. Her hand instantly flew over
his flesh, before he even had time to catch his breath. His prostate quaked
under the fingers of her right hand. She knew the pressure was firm and
inescapable for the young boy. It made her almost feel as if she were trying to
join up her hands. She knew that nothing could be more intensely humiliating,
or so immensely and incredibly stimulating for a naive young boy. Even the
slightest increase in pressure made his body shudder violently. His smooth and
almost feminine hips writhed with the anguish and emotion of a thoroughly
relentless and sexual stimulation.
Deftly she
manipulated the sensitive rim of his penis and the plump protrusion of his
prostate gland with incessant and expertly executed movements of her slender
fingers. The wicked exploitation of his smooth and girlish body was so extreme,
that he gasped and groaned in utter abandonment. He had no resistance or
defence to her onslaught. It was a most thorough demonstration of her intuitive
and inventive probing and stroking.
It could not have
been more than twenty seconds later, that he was ejaculating wildly into the
bath. His emissions were prodigious and torturous. Thoroughly extracted, rather
than given willingly. His own body was no longer under his control. Each
emission was being wrenched and torn from his body by the incessant prodding
and flurried manipulation of her knowing hands. Spurt after spurt was ejected
from his throbbing penis as he gasped and shivered with naive emotion.
"Keep still, I
have not finished with you."
Her words, thrilled
him and frightened him, as he reached the point of over-sensitivity. She knew
how traumatic that was, but she ignored it. It was what her little Jimmy wanted
and needed... a firm and cruel hand.
"Oooooh... no
more please, Miss... it is too sensitive."
"Yes I know it
is Jim, but you will stay where you are and accept this as your due and fully
deserved punishment. Do not try and evade my hands."
His body shook and
moaned, but she continued. His plaintive cries, were music to her ears. On and
on, slip, slurp, slip, slurp, her hand moved with lighting speed over his
erected flesh. Her right hand prodded and cajoled his prostate. And then to her
delight he spurted.
His semen was weaker,
but was still pulsing helplessly from the tip of his penis. His legs began to
quiver as his penis convulsed and his body shuddered, now with completely dry
and agonizing seizures . They were nerve-wrenching and continuous extremes of
exquisite sexual extortion. His body was completely tormented and agonisingly
tortured by ejaculating where no semen was forthcoming. Each completely dry
spasm wracked his body so entirely that it was more distressing than if he was
being whipped at the stake.
She felt her own
orgasm enfold her body. It was an equally torturous and exquisitely sharp multiple
stabbing of pleasure. It speared her body, leaving her quaking in disbelief at
the sudden realisation that she was exalting in her dominance, a sexual
predilection that she would never have believed she had within her. Her true
nature had been exposed and laid open to her... and she had savoured every
second of it.
She let him go and
lifted him up from his position. "Come and lay over my knees little Jimmy,
while I put some cream on your penis and bottom. I want to talk to you."
His heart melted at
her words. He wanted to curl up naked against her beautiful form. Completely
enfolded in her arms. Happily he was laid face-down across her bared knees, her
hand caressing and kneading his buttocks with creams and unguents.
It was two hours
later that Rachael finally decided to go to bed. She had learned everything
about her little Jimmy and was tired. She was startled at the gentle knocking
on her door. She was curious and quickly put on her gown before she opened the
door. The corridor was empty. She looked down to see that a package had been
left upon the floor. It was wrapped neatly in a layer of bubbled plastic. She
picked it up and immediately saw the wonderfully bound book. She opened it and
saw the hand-painted illustrations.
There were about twenty
in all. The face and body of the Snow Queen was truly perfect. How could any
girl compete with such a fine illustration. What an effect this exquisite image
must have had upon a young boy. His parents must have paid a fortune for the
intricate watercolours. Rachael estimated that they must have been painted in
the early 1940's.
Although ostensibly
produced for a children's book, these were far more suitable for the
imagination and delight of a connoisseur of a far more deviant nature . She
photographed them all, one by one. Ready to show Charlotte what Jim’s dream
girl really looked like. She could see how closely her face resembled that of
the illustrations. Certainly she had the lips, eyes and bone structure. She
wondered whether she and Charlotte could simulate the makeup to make an
exactitude of the images.
Her mind turned to
her younger brother. As quick and astute as it was, she pondered the thought of
how she would subjugate Colin to accepting his prescribed treatment. She felt
confident and invigorated by her new-found knowledge and knew that somehow she
would succeed in making him acquiesce. She did not intend to rush into her
first meeting with Colin's naked body. She had not seen him naked since she had
taken his rectal temperature a few years ago. She needed time to crystallise
her thoughts and make proper preparations for her role as his extractor.
It was on Sunday
morning, almost a week later that Colin was blushing and trembling in
embarrassment when he knocked at the surgery door. He had been told to report
to the school nurse at seven that morning. He had been informed that he must
prepare himself in the usual way for his extraction, but then to dress and
report to the surgery.
He found himself
trembling in fearful anticipation as he waited at the door. Nurse Angela
Summers opened the door, immediately stifling the thrill she felt when she saw
his blushing face. Life had become far more exciting since the instigation of
the program.
"Good Morning
Colin, I am most grateful that you are here on time. I'm hoping that I don't
have to keep you too long. I have placed a chair over on the other side of the
examination table for your clothes. So would you strip off as quickly as you
can and then bend over the end of the examination couch, so that your chest and
tummy are flat on the surface please. As quickly as you can please Master
Zimmerman."
Colin blushed as
deeply as any schoolboy would at the pretty nurse's instructions. Before he
could utter one word, he was interrupted.
"I have not got time
for your questions, Colin. So please be obedient and do exactly what you are
told."
She raised her hand
to silence any protestations he might have made and turned her back to him as
she walked towards the surgery's glass cabinets.
Colin dumbly began to
loosen his school tie as he watched the pretty nurse collecting differing
paraphernalia from the shelves.
Obediently he
undressed, feeling absolutely embarrassed as he stood in just his underpants.
He watched the nurse, dreading her next instruction as she turned towards him.
"Come along boy... underpants off and bend over the table. You did hear my
instructions, did you not? So stop wasting time."
Thankfully she turned
away from his again, and Colin rapidly divested himself of his underpants and
quickly leaned over the table, before she could see his naked penis and
testicles.
He felt her hand push
upon the small of his back as she spoke. "Head turned to the right
please... stretch your arms out in front of you and spread your legs as widely
as you can. Now be a good boy, please Colin."
Colin groaned with
embarrassment as he followed her sharp command. He knew that there was no
alternative than to obey her. He managed to spread his arms out in front of
him, and he laid his head so that he was looking to his right, away from his
sight of the nurse. He even managed to spread his legs, although not
particularly widely.
He heard her move
behind him. "I said legs spread wide Colin. Are you intent on disobeying
me. I am going to put a nozzle into your bottom. If you don't spread wide it
will hurt you. Now spread wide." Colin quickly spread his legs widely
apart. He was aware that his penis and testicles would be fully visible from
behind. He gasped as the nurse pushed her fingers against his sphincter. He gasped
again, this time more loudly as cold lubricant was poured from the bottom of
his spine and allowed to run down the crevice between his buttocks.
She rubbed her
fingers firmly around his opening until one finger slipped inside him. She
seemed to be using both hands between his bottom cheeks, her knuckles turning
and pressing against his flesh until suddenly he felt something very cold being
pushed against his opening. In a sudden deft and practiced manoeuvre, her finger was retracted and exchanged for
the cold nozzle of a wide syringe.
"Ooohhhh."
"There we are
now hold still, you will feel some liquid rush inside you. Hold quite still, it
is just a quick rinse."
She pushed the
plunger firmly. "Hooo...oooh."
"There we are,
all done. Close your legs together and hold that for a few moments, I will tell
you when you may go and empty it. The bathroom is to your right, but don't move
yet."
Colin was pleased to
be able to close his legs. He remained bent over the examination couch and
closed his eyes, somehow feeling that he had distanced himself from the
embarrassment.
Nurse Summers looked
at the boy's firm buttocks and long muscular thighs.
My what a lovely young body you have. Lots of
embarrassment for you today my boy. Those naughty young girls will have all
four cheeks as bright red as a fire engine by the time they have finished with
you!
She placed the long
fat syringe in Auto-Steriliser and began to assemble the creams and lubricants
the girls would need. She laid the four wide Velcro straps over the rail of the
medical trolley, thrilling inside as she thought of the young boy's fate.
Suddenly Colin felt his stomach start churning and moments later the dire need
to go to the bathroom.
"Oh nurse, oh
Nurse Summers, I really need to go... ah right now."
Good boy, quickly now
into the bathroom. Stay seated for at least ten minutes. You might think you
have finished, but it is more likely that you won't have. Don't flush, just
call for me."
The last part of her
instructions were addressed to the boy's back as he hurried into the bathroom.
Twenty minutes later,
Colin was laid flat upon the bed. His hands were stretched out above his head
and his legs had been placed, high and wide, into the stirrups. His face was
still blushing as Nurse Summers had fastened the straps upon each shin and each
of his wrists. Her last duty had shamed him to the core as she had nonchalantly
lubricated his sphincter, although she did not penetrate him.
Now he lay completely
naked, virtually immobile and vastly ashamed and embarrassed by his openly
splayed thighs and the acute awareness of his penis, testicles and sphincter,
all rudely displayed for anyone to see if they were to walk through the door.
He had been
embarrassed and humiliated when the nurse had observed the pan of the toilet
and commented upon the clarity of the water. Thankfully, once he had been
fastened so ignominiously, she had left him alone. He could hear her
occasionally moving trolleys and placing equipment, but this was all happening
behind him and he had no idea what her preparations were.
He heard her voice.
"Nearly half past the hour, not long to wait Colin. Just relax and don't
speak otherwise I will lose track of what I am doing."
Colin just looked up
at the large light fitting in the ceiling. He had never seen it switched on,
but thought it looked powerful. To his surprise the light started to glow,
becoming brighter in increments as it reached full intensity. Colin noted, that
although the light seemed bright, it was not glaring or hurting his eyes. He
could still see the mirror arrangement inside the fitting. He looked down at
his naked body and suddenly aware that his flesh had become brightly
illuminated.
He began to wonder
what exactly, he was being prepared for and why the nurse had seemingly been
arranging the surgery equipment so thoroughly. Preparing me for what? Am I
being prepared for some sort of special procedure. He was about to speak to the
nurse as his consternation increased.
He heard the sharp
knock on the door and watched it open immediately. He began to blush as he saw
Miss Nixon entering the room. She was dressed in a white tunic, that seemed to
cling to her body. Her hair was tightly pulled back from her face accenting her
extreme good looks . He noticed that her glasses had heavier frames than those
she usually wore. She looked extremely studious and extremely beautiful. He
blushed deeply as she paused for a moment and moved to stand in-between his
widely splayed legs. She casually observed every inch of his naked genitalia
and then deliberately looked towards his blushing face. She smiled at his
embarrassed expression.
She did not stop as
she walked past him. Her expression was one of complete indifference to his
plight. She moved beyond the head of the bed and out of his view. The door
swung open again and be began to shiver in trepidation as, at first he saw Miss
Charlotte Browne, who was quickly followed by Miss Francis Chambers. He
shivered in shame as the girls looked at his naked body as they too, moved to
stand behind him. He was shivering quite visibly as Miss Webster entered the
room followed closely by Miss Gillian. They moved to stand at either side of
the examination couch. Each standing by his hips and looking down at him. His
face was bright red as Gillian smirked at him.
"Hey, cute
little fellow you got there, big boy."
Colin blushed so
deeply that he could feel the sudden heat in his cheeks. Why were they allowing
young girls like Gillian to observe older boys while they were naked. Surely
she should not be here and certainly she should not be in a position to make
jokes about his nakedness.
Miss Webster addressed him in a soft voice.
She looked straight into his eyes as spoke. "Hello Colin, don't be
embarrassed. We are here to make arrangements for your extractions during the
long vacation. We are all here to assess the suitability of your attitude and
temperament towards your new extractor."
What! I am going to be made to ejaculate at home?
Colin still had no
real idea of exactly what was happening, other than the mention of there being
a new extractor.
He wanted to ask
questions to break the silence that now seemed to have descended upon the room.
Miss Webster turned
her head towards the door as did Gillian. Colin watched with curiosity as the
girl walked into the surgery. He did not recognise her for several moments as
she moved to stand in-between his legs. She looked elegant and aloof. She spoke
to him clearly and calmly. "Colin I will be in charge of your extraction
from now on, so I don't want any fuss from you. Do you understand me?
He looked at her
between his widely spread thighs, before his sudden realisation and horror.
"Oh... oh. NO... Rachael... no, no, no, no. You are my sister... I will
not tolerate this. No way." His face turned from blushing embarrassment,
to outright indignation.
"Colin, my name
is 'Miss Zimmerman' to you. I am your Prefect as you know perfectly well. You
will not show me this disrespect. I am going to extract your semen today and
every day of the vacation as I have been asked to do by the headmistress. It is
not up for debate. You will be polite and respect me, and realise, I hope, that
it is entirely for your benefit and wellbeing."
Colin looked completely horrified at what his
sister was saying.
"No, Rachael. No
I won't let you... It is wrong. Anyway I
wouldn't, no... no, I couldn't do it for my sister, so there." He looked
pleadingly at Miss Webster to intervene.
Miss Webster did, but
certainly not in the way that the naked young boy envisaged. She shook her head
in despair at the him and lifted her
arm, nonchalantly handing Rachael a punishment paddle.
Colin was fuming with
indignation. He was about to shout at his sister, but was too late as his
sister interrupted. Rachael's voice was calm and soft.
"I feel sorry
for you Colin. Can you not see how ashamed of you I feel. To find out that you
have been spanked for playing with your own penis. Secretively and furtively
practicing that most illicit and dirty vice of Onan. Rubbing your penis in
disgusting perversity. Then degrading me in front of everyone. Not showing
deference to my rank and authority. Well Colin I want you to dwell on what I
have said... and come to a conclusion. To help matters along, I am going to
help you crystallise your thoughts "
Colin shivered in
embarrassment as the stirrups moved upwards, lifting his bottom from the bed
and bringing his knees towards his chest. He shuddered in shame as Miss Webster
casually lifted his testicles from between his legs and held his penis and
scrotum tightly against his pubis. "Ooooh Miss... ah."
Rachael raised the
paddle and brought it down upon the juncture between his thigh and the right
cheek of his bottom. Colin was stunned by the sharp sting that emanated from
the hard spank to his to his flesh. By the time he was able to cry out the
second hard spank had already been delivered.
"No... ooOOH,
Rachael Nooo."
"Whap, whap,
whap, whap, whap..."
"aaahhh... nooo,
nooo.. Rach... aaahhhhh."
"Whap, whap,
whap, whap, whap."
"Hoooo...
nooooo."
His legs were
quivering in the stirrups, his face contorted with anguish. The pain had built
up quickly and furiously. Rachael concentrated on her task. Every stroke fast
and firmly applied to the same tender spot. Colin quickly seemed to be
comprehensively enveloped in pain. He was unaware of the hands of the girls
that held his shoulders and his arms.
The resounding
"Whapp, whap, whap, whap, whap," of the paddle was punctuated only by
his cries of anguish.
"Ooooohhh...
oh... please... hooo... ahh.
Rachael did not count
the strokes. There was no anger in her and no pity either. It was a job she had
to do, and do well. She took note of the redness of the flesh as she continued
hard and fast. She did not bother to look at Colin's face, merely noting the
colour of his skin.
"Whap, whap,
whap, whap, whap, whap..." Suddenly she changed to the exact same spot on
his left cheek. "Whap, whap, whap, whap, whap..." A fast tattoo of
pain, inventively and deftly applied.
Colin suddenly
realised that this was not stopping. He cried in pain and anguish as the pain
built up in his left buttock and thigh. His whole nether region in flames of
burning pain. He looked around desperately, to see all of the girl's faces
nonchalantly observing his spanking and seemingly quite indifferent to his
punishment.
His desperation grew,
he tried to wriggle free from the hands and straps that held him. His cries and
struggles were to no avail. "Whap, whap, whap, whap, whap, whap...
Ahh...hooooOOOHH. Whap, whap, whap, whap, whap, whap..."
It was if he suddenly
realised he was on his own. "Oh pleeeease... arrggghhh."
Why was he being so
cruelly punished.
"Whap, whap,
whap, whap, whap, whap, whap, whap, whap, whap, whap, whap."
The paddle changed
back to the right buttock, immediately reawakening the initial area of pain. It
was a most cruel and prolonged punishment, expertly delivered to his firm young
buttocks. "Whap, whap, whap, whap, whap, whap..."
At last, his
self-examination had begun... as inevitably it had to.
It had begun in a quiet
and removed part of his brain, devoid of the cruel onslaught to his buttocks.
His indignation and anger had been cruelly wiped from his mind. His guilt was
there in a huge cauldron of shame, but it was not emotion that occupied that
celestial area of his mind. It was an analysis, equal to anything he had
performed in equations. It was not a huge revelation it was merely an
admittance. A quiet and sober admittance, that his sister had not instigated
this, she had not belittled him in any way.
He loved his sister
and had always looked up to her and yet this boy, this boy that was being punished beneath the
celestial higher reaches of his mind, had treated his sister with a juvenile
disposition of anarchy. He had no excuses. He hauled the thought down to the
writhing, anguished body beneath.
"Whap, whap,
whap, whap, whap, whap, whap, whap, whap, whap, whap, whap."
He writhed in agony.
"Please Miss Zimmerman, Miss Rachael... I know now, I know... and I am
sorry for it. It was my shame and my guilt... that made me... ah... talk to you
that way. You earned the respect you
have from everyone and I spat on it. I know everything that I did... it was my
guilt... only my guilt... not me inside... not the real me. I do respect you, I
am proud of you too. Oh please Miss Zimmerman, I do understand, Oh please Miss,
please stop."
Rachael was thankful
to stop the spanking. She knew that it was a fine line that she had managed to
avoid. She had thought of stopping as his cries had become more anguished, but
somehow she had walked that fine line and eventually won. No, not won, that was
the wrong word. What she done was, she had helped him over the stile of
ignorance to a place beyond. Towards his eventual clear realisation.
He was crying now,
huge tears of guilt and shame. She stood away from the bed as his legs were
lowered to their original position.
It was twenty minutes
later that Rachael brushed her fingers over his cheek and kissed his forehead.
"Come along
Colin, time for your extraction." He blushed furiously and looked at her.
He had not really looked at her before, not truly looked at her, without any
anger or indignation. He watched her lithe and beautiful body move towards the
end of the bed.
Is that really Rachael? She looks the same Rachael and
yet she is exquisite. Stern and exotically beautiful. Have I just never noticed
before now?
She was now standing
between his legs. The end of the examination couch had been removed beyond his
buttocks. She had total access to his naked body. The trolley was beside her
with jars already opened. The girls, including Miss Webster had moved back and
away from the couch.
She was on her own.
The acid test, would his prediction of not being able to ejaculate, because she
was his sister, hold true? She had to prove it false to herself, but more
importantly, she had to prove it to him.
"Right Colin
just relax and take deep steady breaths." Rachael knew that she had become
most expert in the last eight days, having extracted quite copious amounts of
semen from all of the young boys that Miss Webster had arranged for her to hone
her skills upon. Each trembling and naked boy benefitting from her increasing
expertise. Each emission becoming stronger and more anguished as she excelled
and eventually reached a new target. An increase in the issue of every
ejaculation from every boy on her morning and evening rota.
She felt the
anticipatory thrill, a stab of pure pleasure between her legs that she felt
every time she penetrated a young boy. Her fingers felt his initial shock as
she began to lubricate his sphincter. She felt his thighs begin to shake and
move as she introduced the first finger up into his bottom. Her movements were
fluid and deft as she teased his timid little orifice.
"Hoooo..ooh."
"Deep breaths
Colin, come along now. My, my, there we are. Just relax like a good little
boy."
Her second finger
slipped upward beside the first. She looked up and saw him looking at her. His
face examining hers, as her fingers became bolder, stretching the rubbery ring
of muscle that guarded the sensitive gland inside.
"There we are
Colin, you're doing fine. Now don't forget those big breaths... that's the
way." He was obeying her implicitly, although she was aware that his
breathing would not help him in the slightest. She slipped a third finger
through the opening. She heard him gasp as she worked her fingers slowly and
methodically, so that that the increases in her penetration were gradual and
fluid.
Her little finger,
joining the other three, was accomplished without complaint, although she could
feel his bottom begin to quiver more overtly. Little by little she eased her
fingers into him, until his sphincter became more pliant and accommodating.
She felt around on
the top of the trolley with her free hand for the largest of the
stainless-steel speculums. She eased her fingers from his bottom, hearing him
sigh in relief. She dipped the jaws into the opened jar of lubricant and
introduced the closed, curved blades of the speculum to the timid opening of
his bottom. She deftly penetrated him, pushing the smooth steel dilator through
the sphincter with her index finger easing the way.
"Hooo...ooooh...
ah... hooOOHH."
Rachael knew that the
cold metal and the sheer size of the speclum, would make him react. She
squeezed the handles gently, watching the blades gradually open a tunnel
through into his rectum. She pumped until he began to groan.
"Oh... ah, oooOOOH... hoooOOOOHHHH!"
Carefully she
continued squeezing, watching the jaws of the speculum widen and listened to his
moaning and groaning, but stopping, for a moment to let him acclimatise, and
then continuing once more. Slowly but surely the ring of muscle was stretched
around the two curvatures of the jaws.
"Hoo... oooh...
ssssSS... ah, aH hah... HaH."
"Relax, not much
further to go. Now no more fussing. Do you understand me Colin?"
Before he could
protest or reply, she widened the jaws until she was satisfied. She realised
that he was stretched even wider than what she had estimated she would need.
"Ooooowwhh... aaahhhHHH." The sight of the speculum protruding from
his bottom delighted her.
She moved a step
backwards and took a cold medicated wipe to clean the lubricant from her hands.
She looked at his blushing face, seeing his expression encompassed curiosity,
respect and trepidation as well as the expected embarrassment and humiliation.
She placed one hand upon the inside of each widely-spread thigh. She saw him
blush at the realisation that she could touch his body wherever she wished.
She remained cool and
aloof and watched him. It was as she had expected. The boy would perhaps assume
that the girls would be now joining in for the extraction routine. This would
probably have alleviated some of his embarrassment from the thought that it
would be his own sister that would be arousing his naked body. This remission,
he would soon discover, was not to be.
" I am going to
examine you now Colin, so please don't fidget." To her delight his face
flushed immediately, to a deep and blazing redness. She stroked her hands down
the inside of each thigh in a casual gesture, and then moved around to his
side. She stood next to the bed, looked down at his blushing face and trembling
lips.
At the same time that
she looked into his eyes, she let her hand stroke delicately over his chest.
She deliberately let her bright red fingernails, seek out and toy with his left
nipple. She felt the rather pronounced nub of flesh become firm almost
immediately.
Instead of speaking
to him, she spoke to the nurse, although she did not move her head or take her
eyes off his, even for a moment.
"Would you say,
Nurse Summers, that this young boy's nipples are rather pronounced and
sensitive for a young boy? Please correct me if I am wrong, but they seem to be
more like those of a young girl."
"I think you are
quite correct, Miss Zimmerman."
As the nurse was
speaking, she had moved to stand by Rachael's side. Rachael began to toy with
both of his nipples. To her delight he shivered with the sensation of her
fingers. With a thrill running through her body, she began delicately
titillating the hardened nubs of flesh.
"Oh, Nurse
Summers, while I remember. Would you shave Colin for me, this afternoon? I
would like him to be bereft of any hair at all below his eyebrows. I know that
he only has a tiny amount, but sometimes little boys like Colin, seem to think
they are more mature than they actually are. And of course you have witnessed
how unruly and juvenile Colin can be. So if you will do his underarms, his legs
and that tiny bit that he has above his little penis, I would be most grateful.
Colin will obviously co-operate fully, now that he has learned his
lesson."
"Of course dear.
Two of the younger girls are helping me this afternoon, so I can fit him in
easily. I will make him an appointment before he leaves."
Rachael was
delighting in the boy's continuing blushes. His embarrassment was so openly
displayed upon his features, that each humiliation was clearly apparent to her.
She decided to continue, knowing that this would aid her in eventually
procuring his total subjugation.
"Thank you
Nurse. Oh, and will you hold the beaker for me when I extract his semen. I
would be most grateful?"
Rachael had not once
taken her eyes off Colin's blushing face. She really was delighting in his
embarrassment. She moved away and stood between his legs.
"Right my boy,
let me have a look at you."
Her own cool and
aloof manner, juxtaposed with his now very hot and raggedly composed features,
thrilled her beyond her wildest dreams. Her effect upon the boy had him
belittled and docile.
"No fidgeting
now."
At the same time as
she remonstrated with him, she squeezed the handles of the speculum, watching
the ratchet turn and widen the jaws a few more increments.
"Hoooo... ah...
Miss."
She ignored him, other
than to look at his wretched, reddened face. Delicately, her cool slender
fingers slipped beneath his bulging scrotum and lifted the swollen orbs away
from the perineum.
"Ssss... siss...
oh... OH!" She is holding my
testicles. My own sister! And I can't stop her!
She ignored his
reactions as she examined the mobility of his testes within the sac of the
scrotum. She jiggled them upon her fingers for several moments before laying
them back gently and turning her attention to the fattened slug of flesh which
lay upon his pubis. The flesh of his penis was certainly swollen, but as yet
did not display signs of stimulation. She thrilled at the thought of handling
him, wondering if he remembered her curious childhood intrigue.
Rachael had
deliberately not yet touched his penis. She knew that this moment should become
imprinted upon his memory. As would many
other things that she would do to him over the next hour.
"Pay attention
Colin, I am going to manipulate and stimulate the nerves in your penis until
you ejaculate." She delicately pinched the tip of the head of his penis
between the finger and thumb of her left hand, lifting it upwards until the
flesh was stretched fully upright.
"Haaa...
aaahhah. hooohhHH."
"What did you
think about when you were busy beneath your covers, playing with this little
penis of yours?" The crimson nails of her right hand, scored gently over
the sensitive rim of his glans. He shivered immediately.
"Hoooo...
oooohhh."
"Or perhaps I
should have asked, WHOM were you thinking about when you were being a dirty
little boy under your bedclothes?"
"Well Colin, are
you going to tell me... or do I already know, hmm?"
Although the boy was
absolutely cringing with embarrassment and blushing more furiously than ever,
Rachael could feel that his penis had become perceptibly more tumescent.
"Perhaps Miss
Webster, should have spanked you even harder had she known who you were
thinking about. Is that it, Colin?"
She was quite sure
that no boy could blush any more shamefully than Colin was doing right now.
She kept her touch
light and delicate, her fingertips dancing over his sensitive coronal rim.
Gently, she eased the foreskin down the shaft, baring the inner flesh to her
intimate touch. She suddenly felt the first throb of his reluctant arousal, as
the flesh burgeoned into a life of its own. With the lightest of touches, she
coaxed his timid flesh into a sensitive and vulnerable, thick column of exposed
emotion. It became firmer and firmer as her fingernails scored wickedly and
expertly over each erogenous millimetre
of his bared boyhood shame.
She could see that he
was watching her. His eyes betrayed his guilt at the reluctant manifestation of
his sexual arousal. Her touch had seemed so delicate, sometimes a mere whisper
of sensation and yet he could feel his arousal in a maddening rush of blood to
both his penis and his cheeks. He winced in shame as he saw and felt the fully
erected flesh throb and pulse in reluctant excitement.
She seemed so cool
and authoritative. Her touch so knowing and deft, that she had made his penis
respond despite his determined reluctance. For a moment her vision swum before
his eyes. Her slender neck and shoulders, moving gracefully together with her
hands. Her breasts, seemingly swathed individually in the sheer material of her
tunic. Her face, finely boned and delicate, looking at him. Her beautiful
slender image was completely remote and detached from his anguished
humiliation.
Rachael scored the
nail of her index finger along the shaft of his penis, observing with delight,
the immediate throbbing response. Her hands were nonchalant in their expert and
relentless extortion of his once secret and intimate places.
Her hands left his
penis standing up straight and throbbing in a full and rude display. She
reached down to release the brake of the ratchet. She held the jaws wide and
released them slowly as she withdrew the speculum from between his cheeks. She
placed it upon the trolley and took a spray-can. With a well disguised delight
she sprayed every part of his upright penis. It was as if he was holding it
upright for that very purpose. She replaced the spray upon the trolley and
dipped the whole of her right hand into the jar of viscous lubricant.
She waited until he
suddenly gasped and shivered. Knowing that the cold spray had just imparted its
sensitising agent as well as its lubricant.
She slipped all four
fingers into his bottom, sliding them deftly through his sphincter until her
knuckles slowed her progress. "Deep breaths Colin." She was delighted
that the merest increase in pressure, had suddenly allowed her hand to slip
through the quivering aperture. She now had full access right up to the
juncture with her thumb.
"Ooooohh,
please, Miss, pleeeeease don't."
His body suddenly
shuddered with alarm as she turned her wrist upwards. His cries were ignored as
she slipped her free hand between the
cheeks of his bottom and moistened her fingers with lubricant, before casually
slipping his foreskin down the shaft of his penis.
"Oooohhhh...
aaahhhhhHHH, please... oh please... nooo..."
"Best behaviour
Colin, this has to be done. Deep breaths please." Her right hand curled
upward to feel his prostate. She wasted no time in squeezing all four fingers
hard against the gland. Her thumb which, was resting upon his perineum,
supplied excellent purchase.
Her left hand was now
steadily milking the throbbing flesh of his penis. Cruelly, she allowed her
nails to graze against the rim of the glans as she quickened her strokes.
"Please... oh
please ah, Miss, I can't stand it."
"Deep breaths,
Colin."
Rachael could see
that his head was thrown back, as suddenly, his spine arched, until only his
shoulders and hips were in contact with the bed.
Her fingers, deep
inside his bottom, prodded and stroked his prostate in the most rapid and
effective series of stimulating movements. She knew that his penis was
throbbing so quickly and so violently, that it would be mere seconds before he
ejaculated. She saw that the nurse was ready with the beaker.
"Come along
Colin, I want a thorough ejaculation from you, now come along."
She felt a familiar
stab of pleasure shoot up between her legs as his penis exploded with violent
ropes of semen. He was shuddering even more violently as copious emissions were
expelled from the deep reserves of his body. His cries were long and plaintive
as his penis continued to eject frenzied globules of semen into the nurse's
waiting beaker.
"Oh...
ooooooOOOOHH... Hoo, Hoo, Hoo, Hoo... stop, please..."
Rachael wondered if
she had taken him over the edge from pleasure to over sensitivity. But decided
that she had not, as his emissions became less volatile. She steeled herself
for what she must do next.
Her hands continued
with the same deft movements as the boy began to shiver and shake quite violently.
"Please... stop,
stop... Miss, it is too sensitive... please Miss."
She noted that he was
much more coherent now that he had ejaculated, but his alarm was mounting as
she continued her stimulation.
"Oh I can't
stand any more... oh please stop. Oh... argghhh, no more please. I can't stand
it!"
She pressed her pubis
against the bed, feeling her climax approach as she swayed her hips from side
to side against it. Even then her voice was calm and measured as she spoke to
him.
"It is
unbearable isn't it? But I am afraid Colin that it is something you must go
through. Your sensitivity will peak and eventually it will become tolerable.
You must be a brave boy and try and bear up. I want you to remember this every
time you think of rebelling against what has been planned for you."
"Oh... please I
really can't stand any more. It is too sensitive... oh... aaarrrgggghhhhh.
Pleeeeeease noooo more."
His wails were
pathetic and anguished, they were accompanied by moments of pure anguish where
his voice would not function at all. His vision was blurred and yet he pleaded
to his beautiful oppressor and persecutor, begging for mercy as if he was being
whipped and branded. Rachael climaxed in a luxurious envelope of pure pleasure.
The boy's cries and pleadings fired her to a blissful climax followed by a
plateau of satiated lust. Her fires had been quenched. And yet Colin was in the
flames of hell. Rachael sadistically took him through his baptism of pure
torture. He could not escape one sensation as she cruelly ignored his frenzy
and his torment.
"Just bear it
Colin, it is for your own good. It will all be over soon and I hope you will
remember every second of it."
Her fingers never
stilled as the boy's torment peaked. He could no longer speak or cry out, but
soon she knew he would start to become aroused. He would not be able to help
it, she had her own recent experience to know exactly how he would react. She
could feel his body begin to calm and soon it would be the period where her
exact ministrations would begin to arouse him rather than torture him.
She did not vary her
coaxing of his prostate or the expert exploitation of the nerves of his penis.
A pulse. She could swear she felt a pulse within the shaft of his penis it had
not become soft, but after his ejaculation it had lost that granite hardness
that had pulsed and ejected so violently.
At first it was just one pulse at the base of
his penis, but that was quickly followed by a sequence of several more and then
the shaft had stiffened with regular pulsations which, had been joined with
matching movements within his prostate. The pulses quickly became deep and
evenly spaced throbs of pure arousal. His penis and hardened fully, vibrant and
throbbing beneath her skilful fingers.
"There we are
Colin, we are all ready to watch your second extraction. Give me your full
emission and I promise I won't take you through that over-sensitivity feeling
again, unless you are naughty and disobedient. Colin could not believe what was
happening to him... and yet he felt that his body was on the edge of something,
but was it the same?
His whole body seemed
poised and then he felt his own emotions take hold. He could feel himself
quiver and the feeling that what was coming could not be stopped. He doubted he
could have felt more aroused than his last ejaculation and yet suddenly every
nerve tingled in exactly the same way.
How could this be
happening again, after such torture? But it did... and mightily. Deep inside of
his bottom gathered an intense feeling. He was helpless, bereft of control. He
could feel his entire bottom pulsating as the feeling intensified. It was like
a Roller-Coaster, gathering speed and intensity. Deep between his legs to the
base of his penis. Every nerve tingled as he cried out, arching his back in
pure unrelenting sensation.
"Oooohhh...
Miss... I... ah...aah. HooooooOOOHH!" It overtook him, every nerve and
sinew taut and agonizingly exquisite. "Ooooohhhhh... hoooooHH."
Rachael's voice was
calm and clear. Come along Colin, I want a thorough extraction. Come along
now." He was fevered and frenzied as Nurse Summers moved forward. He
ejaculated wildly, his ejaculation seemingly draining all his strength as
again, large globules splattered into the beaker.
It seemed agonizingly
endless. Spurt after spurt of huge globules smacking against the glass, one
after the other in an endless procession. Would it end? He felt like it never
would, and then suddenly for Colin there was blackness. Rachael smiled to
herself as she let go of his penis and squeezed his testicles firmly. She drew
her hand up his penis, expected to see a bead or two of his semen. He was dry,
she had drained him dry.
She extricated her
hand and walked to the side of the bed. Colin was breathing regularly but was
in a dead faint. She turned towards Miss Webster and the girls and immediately
had to burst out laughing Each of them held a card up above their heads. Every
one of them had the number 10 written upon it.
Rachael and Judith
left the Academy two days early and flew home to Rachael's mother's, mansion on
the beach. On arriving home they were quick to unpack and examine the equipment
that Rachael's mother had ordered and had installed. Judith looked at Rachael.
"Ten dollars says he will die when he see's this." Rachael smiled as
she looked around the room. "My god it is more like an operating
theatre." Just as the girls were about to dance around the room a woman
walked in with a young girl by her side.
"You must be
Rachael and I guess this is your friend Judith. Your mother is at work, as
usual, so I said I would come across and introduce myself. I am Connie Steadman
and this is my daughter, Tammy. Your mother has explained everything to me...
hmm regarding your brother Colin. Your mother is a good friend of mine... a very
good friend, and we have no secrets. She told me that your Principal, Victoria,
has found it beneficial to your program to have as many pairs of hands as
possible. She also told me that she has introduced younger girls to help with
the extractions. Well my son Tim, is the same age as Colin and the poor boy is
going through exactly the same thing. When your mother told me how the school
were handling the boys' puberty at the academy. I followed the same course with
Tim. I have taken charge of him in exactly the same way that you have, with
Colin"
She paused and smiled
at them both. "You are both beautiful young girls, I bet Colin is
embarrassed to hell."
Rachael smiled.
"I wish we could have met before now. Mother has spoken about you often,
but when she is at home you are at work. She didn't tell me how beautiful you
were or how pretty your daughter is. See... I do know who you are, you are my
mothers partner... you were at college together... am I right?"
"Of course, you
are. Academy for the unusually gifted hasn't been wasted has it." Rachael
grinned. "So OK tell me what are mother's plans."
Connie smiled at
Rachael. "Let me get Tammy to tell you, she's a hoot."
Tammy made a face at
her mother and giggled. "My name is Tammy Steadman, I have become an extractor.
I have practised on my brother, twice a day... that is, Monday thru Friday. On
Saturday and Sunday, I have extracted his semen three times a day. He gets
embarrassed, but mom has put me in charge of him, so he does what he is
told."
She held out her
hand. "Look at my hand, I can get all of it up into his bottom... I don't
take a lot of time doing it either." Rachael looked at her hand, which was
slender and petite. The girl was tall with very long legs, she reminded Rachael
of Gillian back at the academy, she also seemed to be nearly as forward as
Gillian too!
"See they are
really slim. Well Tim, hmm... actually we called him little Timmy now, goes
berserk when I put my hand up his bottom. I can really stimulate him to his
limit." She giggled again. "Well... beyond his limit really. I get to
spank him too, now that he is in my charge. We use a paddle and I have him
bare-assed naked over my knees." She giggled again, making Rachael and
Judith laugh with her.
"The first time
I had him over my knees he got cum all over my dress. So now we've got tunics,
just like Miss Hartman described to your mom. Mine is real short, and I spank
him while I am wearing my tunic, he often cums on my legs, but I don't count
that, and I still make him do it again.
I do his bath time for him too. Mom doesn't
allow him to bathe or shower in case he plays with his little pee-pee."
She giggled again. "Well it's not really a little pee-pee, it is really
huge. Mom will tell you all about it." She put her hands out as if asking
for applause. "Oh one other thing, we have a young girl from the company
that comes over. She is really good and she likes Timmy a lot. She gets him
really embarrassed when she helps with his extraction. It makes him very easy
to handle."
Rachael smiled, but
it was Judith that spoke. "OK Tammy, you are hired." They all broke
into giggles. "Really, I can't wait to see Colin, he is bigger than Timmy,
so it would be really cool to be able to handle him. Has he got a nice pee-pee?
I just love playing with Timmy's. He has cute balls too. I check him at the
weekends, to see if he has an erection. He always has one by the time I take my
hand out of his shorts." She giggled and was still giggling when she spoke
again. "
I could bring Timmy
over tomorrow and you could try out your couch, I know all the controls and how
to get his legs really wide when he is not expecting it. Would that be alright
mom, it's the vacation, so it would be pretty easy. God, he's going to die when
he see you two." Rachael looked at Connie. "Would that be alright
Connie? It sounds a great way to get up to speed on this." She gestured
towards the large examination couch.
Connie smiled.
"I think it might do Timmy good and Tammy is a whizz with the bed
controls. There are hand and foot actuators, so you can get used to both and
see which suits you best."
Tammy giggled and
spoke through her giggles. "I was just thinking about when Colin comes
home. He doesn't know me, so what if I do my waitress impression?" Rachael
and Judith both looked puzzled and Connie smiled indulgently at Tammy.
"Let her do it, the boy will die."
"Well I could
walk in with my tunic on, did I tell you how short it is? Well OK. I walk in
while he is naked but not on the bed or in the stirrups. He will just be standing
there, you know, naked waiting for you to strap him in the stirrups. So I walk
in and do my thing." She turned and walked to the door and then turned and
walked towards Rachael. Her pretty face was smiling with a professional smile.
"Oh hello, you must be Colin. I am Miss
Tammy, and I will be helping with your extraction this morning. Now if you will
just put your hands upon your head, I will have a look at you. You must know by
now that you are not allowed to play with your little pee-pee. I must warn you,
that I am an accomplished spanker and I really do spank hard. I thought you
might have learned your lesson by now. So, hands upon your head, or it's your
little bare bottom over my knees." Tammy went into hysterics at that
point, as did her mother and both girls. "Well, what do you think?"
Rachael did think;
but not about what the girl had said. Things could not be better, she thought.
Charlotte would have
Richard completely under her spell by the end of the vacation.
She would have her
beautiful brother, Colin, to play with and subjugate as and when she wished.
And, the final most delicious thought of all. She would have her little Jim
Murphy, naked over her bare knees, smacking his beautiful feminine bottom,
while his throbbing penis was trapped between her thighs.
She had ordered him
not to play with his penis while he was away on vacation. Her photograph,
made-up and dressed exactly like the Snow Queen had taken his breath away.
Charlotte and she,
had experimented with lighting and costumes from the school stage props for
hours, until finally, they had both been startled by the exquisite result.
As Jimmy had stood in
front of her on her last day of term, his naked body trembling with
embarrassment, she had handed him the photograph.
"Take it out at
night when you are in bed. Look at this picture of me and tell me that you will
not touch yourself. Talk to my picture every night and promise me that you will
be good."
The look of wonder
upon the boy's face, as he looked up to her, was enough for her to know that he
would obey her implicitly.
For Richard, Colin
and Jim, their lives had changed. But with firm management of their changing
bodies, she knew they would benefit. Her thoughts returned to the room.
She looked at Connie.
"As Tammy is here with us at the moment, she could demonstrate the bed
right now, don't you think Connie." She looked Connie Steadman in the eye
and gave her a knowing wink as she gestured towards Tammy. "Yes of course.
Why don't you ask her."
Connie pushed Tammy
to stand in front of Rachael. "Why don't you slip your clothes off Tammy,
and we will see how far apart we can spread those pretty thighs of yours?"
Tammy blushed and
smiled shyly as she began to undo her buttons. "You will have to be
careful," she giggled, "I am still Virgo Intacta."
Judith whispered to
Rachael. "Id faciam"
End
(End of File)